I Out to Sea
II The Savage Home
III Life and Death
IV The Apes
V The White Ape
VI Jungle Battles
VII The Light of
Knowledge
VIII The Tree-top
Hunter
IX Man and Man
X The Fear-Phantom
XI "King of the
Apes"
XII Man's Reason
XIII His Own Kind
XIV At the Mercy of the
Jungle
XV The Forest God
XVI "Most
Remarkable"
XVII Burials
XVIII The Jungle Toll
XIX The Call of the
Primitive
XX Heredity
XXI The Village of
Torture
XXII The Search Party
XXIII Brother Men
XXIV Lost Treasure
XXV The Outpost of the
World
XXVI The Height of
Civilization
XXVII The Giant Again
XXVIII Conclusion
I had this story from
one who had no business to tell it to me, or to any other. I may credit the
seductive influence of an old vintage upon the narrator for the beginning of
it, and my own skeptical incredulity during the days that followed for the
balance of the strange tale.
When my convivial host
discovered that he had told me so much, and that I was prone to doubtfulness,
his foolish pride assumed the task the old vintage had commenced, and so he
unearthed written evidence in the form of musty manuscript, and dry official
records of the British Colonial Office to support many of the salient features
of his remarkable narrative.
I do not say the story
is true, for I did not witness the happenings which it portrays, but the fact
that in the telling of it to you I have taken fictitious names for the
principal characters quite sufficiently evidences the sincerity of my own
belief that it may be true.
The yellow, mildewed
pages of the diary of a man long dead, and the records of the Colonial Office
dovetail perfectly with the narrative of my convivial host, and so I give you
the story as I painstakingly pieced it out from these several various agencies.
If you do not find it
credible you will at least be as one with me in acknowledging that it is
unique, remarkable, and interesting.
From the records of the
Colonial Office and from the dead man's diary we learn that a certain young
English nobleman, whom we shall call John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, was
commissioned to make a peculiarly delicate investigation of conditions in a
British West Coast African Colony from whose simple native inhabitants another
European power was known to be recruiting soldiers for its native army, which
it used solely for the forcible collection of rubber and ivory from the savage
tribes along the Congo and the Aruwimi. The natives of the British Colony
complained that many of their young men were enticed away through the medium of
fair and glowing promises, but that few if any ever returned to their families.
The Englishmen in
Africa went even further, saying that these poor blacks were held in virtual
slavery, since after their terms of enlistment expired their ignorance was
imposed upon by their white officers, and they were told that they had yet
several years to serve.
And so the Colonial
Office appointed John Clayton to a new post in British West Africa, but his
confidential instructions centered on a thorough investigation of the unfair
treatment of black British subjects by the officers of a friendly European
power. Why he was sent, is, however, of little moment to this story, for he
never made an investigation, nor, in fact, did he ever reach his destination.
Clayton was the type of
Englishman that one likes best to associate with the noblest monuments of
historic achievement upon a thousand victorious battlefields--a strong, virile
man --mentally, morally, and physically.
In stature he was above
the average height; his eyes were gray, his features regular and strong; his
carriage that of perfect, robust health influenced by his years of army
training.
Political ambition had
caused him to seek transference from the army to the Colonial Office and so we
find him, still young, entrusted with a delicate and important commission in
the service of the Queen.
When he received this
appointment he was both elated and appalled. The preferment seemed to him in
the nature of a well-merited reward for painstaking and intelligent service,
and as a stepping stone to posts of greater importance and responsibility; but,
on the other hand, he had been married to the Hon. Alice Rutherford for scarce
a three months, and it was the thought of taking this fair young girl into the
dangers and isolation of tropical Africa that appalled him.
For her sake he would
have refused the appointment, but she would not have it so. Instead she
insisted that he accept, and, indeed, take her with him.
There were mothers and
brothers and sisters, and aunts and cousins to express various opinions on the
subject, but as to what they severally advised history is silent.
We know only that on a
bright May morning in 1888, John, Lord Greystoke, and Lady Alice sailed from
Dover on their way to Africa.
A month later they
arrived at Freetown where they chartered a small sailing vessel, the Fuwalda,
which was to bear them to their final destination.
And here John, Lord
Greystoke, and Lady Alice, his wife, vanished from the eyes and from the
knowledge of men.
Two months after they
weighed anchor and cleared from the port of Freetown a half dozen British war
vessels were scouring the south Atlantic for trace of them or their little
vessel, and it was almost immediately that the wreckage was found upon the
shores of St. Helena which convinced the world that the Fuwalda had gone down
with all on board, and hence the search was stopped ere it had scarce begun;
though hope lingered in longing hearts for many years.
The Fuwalda, a
barkentine of about one hundred tons, was a vessel of the type often seen in
coastwise trade in the far southern Atlantic, their crews composed of the
offscourings of the sea--unhanged murderers and cutthroats of every race and
every nation.
The Fuwalda was no
exception to the rule. Her officers were swarthy bullies, hating and hated by
their crew. The captain, while a competent seaman, was a brute in his treatment
of his men. He knew, or at least he used, but two arguments in his dealings
with them--a belaying pin and a revolver--nor is it likely that the motley
aggregation he signed would have understood aught else.
So it was that from the
second day out from Freetown John Clayton and his young wife witnessed scenes
upon the deck of the Fuwalda such as they had believed were never enacted
outside the covers of printed stories of the sea.
It was on the morning
of the second day that the first link was forged in what was destined to form a
chain of circumstances ending in a life for one then unborn such as has never
been paralleled in the history of man.
Two sailors were
washing down the decks of the Fuwalda, the first mate was on duty, and the
captain had stopped to speak with John Clayton and Lady Alice.
The men were working
backwards toward the little party who were facing away from the sailors. Closer
and closer they came, until one of them was directly behind the captain. In
another moment he would have passed by and this strange narrative would never
have been recorded.
But just that instant
the officer turned to leave Lord and Lady Greystoke, and, as he did so, tripped
against the sailor and sprawled headlong upon the deck, overturning the
water-pail so that he was drenched in its dirty contents.
For an instant the
scene was ludicrous; but only for an instant. With a volley of awful oaths, his
face suffused with the scarlet of mortification and rage, the captain regained
his feet, and with a terrific blow felled the sailor to the deck.
The man was small and
rather old, so that the brutality of the act was thus accentuated. The other
seaman, however, was neither old nor small--a huge bear of a man, with fierce
black mustachios, and a great bull neck set between massive shoulders.
As he saw his mate go
down he crouched, and, with a low snarl, sprang upon the captain crushing him
to his knees with a single mighty blow.
From scarlet the
officer's face went white, for this was mutiny; and mutiny he had met and
subdued before in his brutal career. Without waiting to rise he whipped a
revolver from his pocket, firing point blank at the great mountain of muscle
towering before him; but, quick as he was, John Clayton was almost as quick, so
that the bullet which was intended for the sailor's heart lodged in the
sailor's leg instead, for Lord Greystoke had struck down the captain's arm as
he had seen the weapon flash in the sun.
Words passed between
Clayton and the captain, the former making it plain that he was disgusted with
the brutality displayed toward the crew, nor would he countenance anything
further of the kind while he and Lady Greystoke remained passengers.
The captain was on the
point of making an angry reply, but, thinking better of it, turned on his heel
and black and scowling, strode aft.
He did not care to
antagonize an English official, for the Queen's mighty arm wielded a punitive
instrument which he could appreciate, and which he feared--England's
far-reaching navy.
The two sailors picked
themselves up, the older man assisting his wounded comrade to rise. The big
fellow, who was known among his mates as Black Michael, tried his leg gingerly,
and, finding that it bore his weight, turned to Clayton with a word of gruff
thanks.
Though the fellow's
tone was surly, his words were evidently well meant. Ere he had scarce finished
his little speech he had turned and was limping off toward the forecastle with
the very apparent intention of forestalling any further conversation.
They did not see him
again for several days, nor did the captain accord them more than the surliest
of grunts when he was forced to speak to them.
They took their meals
in his cabin, as they had before the unfortunate occurrence; but the captain
was careful to see that his duties never permitted him to eat at the same time.
The other officers were
coarse, illiterate fellows, but little above the villainous crew they bullied,
and were only too glad to avoid social intercourse with the polished English
noble and his lady, so that the Claytons were left very much to themselves.
This in itself accorded
perfectly with their desires, but it also rather isolated them from the life of
the little ship so that they were unable to keep in touch with the daily
happenings which were to culminate so soon in bloody tragedy.
There was in the whole
atmosphere of the craft that undefinable something which presages disaster.
Outwardly, to the knowledge of the Claytons, all went on as before upon the
little vessel; but that there was an undertow leading them toward some unknown
danger both felt, though they did not speak of it to each other.
On the second day after
the wounding of Black Michael, Clayton came on deck just in time to see the
limp body of one of the crew being carried below by four of his fellows while
the first mate, a heavy belaying pin in his hand, stood glowering at the little
party of sullen sailors.
Clayton asked no
questions--he did not need to--and the following day, as the great lines of a
British battleship grew out of the distant horizon, he half determined to
demand that he and Lady Alice be put aboard her, for his fears were steadily
increasing that nothing but harm could result from remaining on the lowering,
sullen Fuwalda.
Toward noon they were
within speaking distance of the British vessel, but when Clayton had nearly
decided to ask the captain to put them aboard her, the obvious ridiculousness
of such a request became suddenly apparent. What reason could he give the
officer commanding her majesty's ship for desiring to go back in the direction
from which he had just come!
What if he told them
that two insubordinate seamen had been roughly handled by their officers? They
would but laugh in their sleeves and attribute his reason for wishing to leave
the ship to but one thing--cowardice.
John Clayton, Lord
Greystoke, did not ask to be transferred to the British man-of-war. Late in the
afternoon he saw her upper works fade below the far horizon, but not before he
learned that which confirmed his greatest fears, and caused him to curse the
false pride which had restrained him from seeking safety for his young wife a
few short hours before, when safety was within reach--a safety which was now
gone forever.
It was mid-afternoon
that brought the little old sailor, who had been felled by the captain a few
days before, to where Clayton and his wife stood by the ship's side watching
the ever diminishing outlines of the great battleship. The old fellow was
polishing brasses, and as he came edging along until close to Clayton he said,
in an undertone:
“'Ell's to pay, sir, on
this 'ere craft, an' mark my word for it, sir. 'Ell's to pay.”
“What do you mean, my
good fellow?” asked Clayton.
“Wy, hasn't ye seen
wats goin' on? Hasn't ye 'eard that devil's spawn of a capting an' is mates
knockin' the bloomin' lights outen 'arf the crew?
“Two busted 'eads
yeste'day, an' three to-day. Black Michael's as good as new agin an' 'e's not
the bully to stand fer it, not 'e; an' mark my word for it, sir.”
“You mean, my man, that
the crew contemplates mutiny?” asked Clayton.
“Mutiny!” exclaimed the
old fellow. “Mutiny! They means murder, sir, an' mark my word for it, sir.”
“When?”
“Hit's comin', sir;
hit's comin' but I'm not a-sayin' wen, an' I've said too damned much now, but
ye was a good sort t'other day an' I thought it no more'n right to warn ye. But
keep a still tongue in yer 'ead an' when ye 'ear shootin' git below an' stay there.
“That's all, only keep
a still tongue in yer 'ead, or they'll put a pill between yer ribs, an' mark my
word for it, sir,” and the old fellow went on with his polishing, which carried
him away from where the Claytons were standing.
“Deuced cheerful
outlook, Alice,” said Clayton.
“You should warn the
captain at once, John. Possibly the trouble may yet be averted,” she said.
“I suppose I should,
but yet from purely selfish motives I am almost prompted to ‘keep a still
tongue in my 'ead.’ Whatever they do now they will spare us in recognition of
my stand for this fellow Black Michael, but should they find that I had
betrayed them there would be no mercy shown us, Alice.”
“You have but one duty,
John, and that lies in the interest of vested authority. If you do not warn the
captain you are as much a party to whatever follows as though you had helped to
plot and carry it out with your own head and hands.”
“You do not understand,
dear,” replied Clayton. “It is of you I am thinking--there lies my first duty.
The captain has brought this condition upon himself, so why then should I risk
subjecting my wife to unthinkable horrors in a probably futile attempt to save
him from his own brutal folly? You have no conception, dear, of what would
follow were this pack of cutthroats to gain control of the Fuwalda.”
“Duty is duty, John,
and no amount of sophistries may change it. I would be a poor wife for an
English lord were I to be responsible for his shirking a plain duty. I realize
the danger which must follow, but I can face it with you.”
“Have it as you will
then, Alice,” he answered, smiling. “Maybe we are borrowing trouble. While I do
not like the looks of things on board this ship, they may not be so bad after
all, for it is possible that the ‘Ancient Mariner’ was but voicing the desires
of his wicked old heart rather than speaking of real facts.
“Mutiny on the high sea
may have been common a hundred years ago, but in this good year 1888 it is the
least likely of happenings.
“But there goes the captain
to his cabin now. If I am going to warn him I might as well get the beastly job
over for I have little stomach to talk with the brute at all.”
So saying he strolled
carelessly in the direction of the companionway through which the captain had
passed, and a moment later was knocking at his door.
“Come in,” growled the
deep tones of that surly officer.
And when Clayton had
entered, and closed the door behind him:
“Well?”
“I have come to report
the gist of a conversation I heard to-day, because I feel that, while there may
be nothing to it, it is as well that you be forearmed. In short, the men
contemplate mutiny and murder.”
“It's a lie!” roared
the captain. “And if you have been interfering again with the discipline of
this ship, or meddling in affairs that don't concern you you can take the
consequences, and be damned. I don't care whether you are an English lord or
not. I'm captain of this here ship, and from now on you keep your meddling nose
out of my business.”
The captain had worked
himself up to such a frenzy of rage that he was fairly purple of face, and he
shrieked the last words at the top of his voice, emphasizing his remarks by a
loud thumping of the table with one huge fist, and shaking the other in
Clayton's face.
Greystoke never turned
a hair, but stood eying the excited man with level gaze.
“Captain Billings,” he
drawled finally, “if you will pardon my candor, I might remark that you are
something of an ass.”
Whereupon he turned and
left the captain with the same indifferent ease that was habitual with him, and
which was more surely calculated to raise the ire of a man of Billings' class
than a torrent of invective.
So, whereas the captain
might easily have been brought to regret his hasty speech had Clayton attempted
to conciliate him, his temper was now irrevocably set in the mold in which
Clayton had left it, and the last chance of their working together for their
common good was gone.
“Well, Alice,” said
Clayton, as he rejoined his wife, “I might have saved my breath. The fellow
proved most ungrateful. Fairly jumped at me like a mad dog.
“He and his blasted old
ship may hang, for aught I care; and until we are safely off the thing I shall
spend my energies in looking after our own welfare. And I rather fancy the first
step to that end should be to go to our cabin and look over my revolvers. I am
sorry now that we packed the larger guns and the ammunition with the stuff
below.”
They found their
quarters in a bad state of disorder. Clothing from their open boxes and bags
strewed the little apartment, and even their beds had been torn to pieces.
“Evidently someone was
more anxious about our belongings than we,” said Clayton. “Let's have a look
around, Alice, and see what's missing.”
A thorough search
revealed the fact that nothing had been taken but Clayton's two revolvers and
the small supply of ammunition he had saved out for them.
“Those are the very
things I most wish they had left us,” said Clayton, “and the fact that they
wished for them and them alone is most sinister.”
“What are we to do,
John?” asked his wife. “Perhaps you were right in that our best chance lies in
maintaining a neutral position.
“If the officers are
able to prevent a mutiny, we have nothing to fear, while if the mutineers are
victorious our one slim hope lies in not having attempted to thwart or
antagonize them.”
“Right you are, Alice.
We'll keep in the middle of the road.”
As they started to
straighten up their cabin, Clayton and his wife simultaneously noticed the
corner of a piece of paper protruding from beneath the door of their quarters.
As Clayton stooped to reach for it he was amazed to see it move further into
the room, and then he realized that it was being pushed inward by someone from
without.
Quickly and silently he
stepped toward the door, but, as he reached for the knob to throw it open, his
wife's hand fell upon his wrist.
“No, John,” she
whispered. “They do not wish to be seen, and so we cannot afford to see them.
Do not forget that we are keeping to the middle of the road.”
Clayton smiled and
dropped his hand to his side. Thus they stood watching the little bit of white
paper until it finally remained at rest upon the floor just inside the door.
Then Clayton stooped
and picked it up. It was a bit of grimy, white paper roughly folded into a
ragged square. Opening it they found a crude message printed almost illegibly,
and with many evidences of an unaccustomed task.
Translated, it was a
warning to the Claytons to refrain from reporting the loss of the revolvers, or
from repeating what the old sailor had told them--to refrain on pain of death.
“I rather imagine we'll
be good,” said Clayton with a rueful smile. “About all we can do is to sit
tight and wait for whatever may come.”
Nor did they have long
to wait, for the next morning as Clayton was emerging on deck for his
accustomed walk before breakfast, a shot rang out, and then another, and
another.
The sight which met his
eyes confirmed his worst fears. Facing the little knot of officers was the
entire motley crew of the Fuwalda, and at their head stood Black Michael.
At the first volley
from the officers the men ran for shelter, and from points of vantage behind
masts, wheel-house and cabin they returned the fire of the five men who
represented the hated authority of the ship.
Two of their number had
gone down before the captain's revolver. They lay where they had fallen between
the combatants. But then the first mate lunged forward upon his face, and at a
cry of command from Black Michael the mutineers charged the remaining four. The
crew had been able to muster but six firearms, so most of them were armed with
boat hooks, axes, hatchets and crowbars.
The captain had emptied
his revolver and was reloading as the charge was made. The second mate's gun
had jammed, and so there were but two weapons opposed to the mutineers as they
bore down upon the officers, who now started to give back before the infuriated
rush of their men.
Both sides were cursing
and swearing in a frightful manner, which, together with the reports of the
firearms and the screams and groans of the wounded, turned the deck of the
Fuwalda to the likeness of a madhouse.
Before the officers had
taken a dozen backward steps the men were upon them. An ax in the hands of a
burly Negro cleft the captain from forehead to chin, and an instant later the
others were down: dead or wounded from dozens of blows and bullet wounds.
Short and grisly had
been the work of the mutineers of the Fuwalda, and through it all John Clayton
had stood leaning carelessly beside the companionway puffing meditatively upon
his pipe as though he had been but watching an indifferent cricket match.
As the last officer
went down he thought it was time that he returned to his wife lest some members
of the crew find her alone below.
Though outwardly calm
and indifferent, Clayton was inwardly apprehensive and wrought up, for he
feared for his wife's safety at the hands of these ignorant, half-brutes into
whose hands fate had so remorselessly thrown them.
As he turned to descend
the ladder he was surprised to see his wife standing on the steps almost at his
side.
“How long have you been
here, Alice?”
“Since the beginning,”
she replied. “How awful, John. Oh, how awful! What can we hope for at the hands
of such as those?”
“Breakfast, I hope,” he
answered, smiling bravely in an attempt to allay her fears.
“At least,” he added, “I'm
going to ask them. Come with me, Alice. We must not let them think we expect
any but courteous treatment.”
The men had by this
time surrounded the dead and wounded officers, and without either partiality or
compassion proceeded to throw both living and dead over the sides of the
vessel. With equal heartlessness they disposed of their own dead and dying.
Presently one of the
crew spied the approaching Claytons, and with a cry of: “Here's two more for
the fishes,” rushed toward them with uplifted ax.
But Black Michael was
even quicker, so that the fellow went down with a bullet in his back before he
had taken a half dozen steps.
With a loud roar, Black
Michael attracted the attention of the others, and, pointing to Lord and Lady
Greystoke, cried:
“These here are my
friends, and they are to be left alone. D'ye understand?
“I'm captain of this
ship now, an' what I says goes,” he added, turning to Clayton. “Just keep to
yourselves, and nobody'll harm ye,” and he looked threateningly on his fellows.
The Claytons heeded
Black Michael's instructions so well that they saw but little of the crew and
knew nothing of the plans the men were making.
Occasionally they heard
faint echoes of brawls and quarreling among the mutineers, and on two occasions
the vicious bark of firearms rang out on the still air. But Black Michael was a
fit leader for this band of cutthroats, and, withal held them in fair subjection
to his rule.
On the fifth day
following the murder of the ship's officers, land was sighted by the lookout.
Whether island or mainland, Black Michael did not know, but he announced to
Clayton that if investigation showed that the place was habitable he and Lady
Greystoke were to be put ashore with their belongings.
“You'll be all right
there for a few months,” he explained, “and by that time we'll have been able
to make an inhabited coast somewhere and scatter a bit. Then I'll see that yer
gover'ment's notified where you be an' they'll soon send a man-o'war to fetch
ye off.
“It would be a hard
matter to land you in civilization without a lot o' questions being asked, an'
none o' us here has any very convincin' answers up our sleeves.”
Clayton remonstrated
against the inhumanity of landing them upon an unknown shore to be left to the
mercies of savage beasts, and, possibly, still more savage men.
But his words were of
no avail, and only tended to anger Black Michael, so he was forced to desist
and make the best he could of a bad situation.
About three o'clock in
the afternoon they came about off a beautiful wooded shore opposite the mouth
of what appeared to be a land-locked harbor.
Black Michael sent a
small boat filled with men to sound the entrance in an effort to determine if
the Fuwalda could be safely worked through the entrance.
In about an hour they
returned and reported deep water through the passage as well as far into the
little basin.
Before dark the
barkentine lay peacefully at anchor upon the bosom of the still, mirror-like
surface of the harbor.
The surrounding shores
were beautiful with semitropical verdure, while in the distance the country
rose from the ocean in hill and tableland, almost uniformly clothed by primeval
forest.
No signs of habitation
were visible, but that the land might easily support human life was evidenced
by the abundant bird and animal life of which the watchers on the Fuwalda's
deck caught occasional glimpses, as well as by the shimmer of a little river
which emptied into the harbor, insuring fresh water in plenitude.
As darkness settled
upon the earth, Clayton and Lady Alice still stood by the ship's rail in silent
contemplation of their future abode. From the dark shadows of the mighty forest
came the wild calls of savage beasts--the deep roar of the lion, and,
occasionally, the shrill scream of a panther.
The woman shrank closer
to the man in terror-stricken anticipation of the horrors lying in wait for
them in the awful blackness of the nights to come, when they should be alone
upon that wild and lonely shore.
Later in the evening
Black Michael joined them long enough to instruct them to make their
preparations for landing on the morrow. They tried to persuade him to take them
to some more hospitable coast near enough to civilization so that they might
hope to fall into friendly hands. But no pleas, or threats, or promises of
reward could move him.
“I am the only man
aboard who would not rather see ye both safely dead, and, while I know that's the
sensible way to make sure of our own necks, yet Black Michael's not the man to
forget a favor. Ye saved my life once, and in return I'm goin' to spare yours,
but that's all I can do.
“The men won't stand
for any more, and if we don't get ye landed pretty quick they may even change
their minds about giving ye that much show. I'll put all yer stuff ashore with
ye as well as cookin' utensils an' some old sails for tents, an' enough grub to
last ye until ye can find fruit and game.
“With yer guns for protection,
ye ought to be able to live here easy enough until help comes. When I get
safely hid away I'll see to it that the British gover'ment learns about where
ye be; for the life of me I couldn't tell 'em exactly where, for I don't know
myself. But they'll find ye all right.”
After he had left them
they went silently below, each wrapped in gloomy forebodings.
Clayton did not believe
that Black Michael had the slightest intention of notifying the British
government of their whereabouts, nor was he any too sure but that some
treachery was contemplated for the following day when they should be on shore
with the sailors who would have to accompany them with their belongings.
Once out of Black
Michael's sight any of the men might strike them down, and still leave Black
Michael's conscience clear.
And even should they
escape that fate was it not but to be faced with far graver dangers? Alone, he
might hope to survive for years; for he was a strong, athletic man.
But what of Alice, and
that other little life so soon to be launched amidst the hardships and grave
dangers of a primeval world?
The man shuddered as he
meditated upon the awful gravity, the fearful helplessness, of their situation.
But it was a merciful Providence which prevented him from foreseeing the
hideous reality which awaited them in the grim depths of that gloomy wood.
Early next morning
their numerous chests and boxes were hoisted on deck and lowered to waiting
small boats for transportation to shore.
There was a great
quantity and variety of stuff, as the Claytons had expected a possible five to
eight years' residence in their new home. Thus, in addition to the many
necessities they had brought, there were also many luxuries.
Black Michael was
determined that nothing belonging to the Claytons should be left on board.
Whether out of compassion for them, or in furtherance of his own
self-interests, it would be difficult to say.
There was no question
but that the presence of property of a missing British official upon a
suspicious vessel would have been a difficult thing to explain in any civilized
port in the world.
So zealous was he in
his efforts to carry out his intentions that he insisted upon the return of
Clayton's revolvers to him by the sailors in whose possession they were.
Into the small boats
were also loaded salt meats and biscuit, with a small supply of potatoes and
beans, matches, and cooking vessels, a chest of tools, and the old sails which
Black Michael had promised them.
As though himself
fearing the very thing which Clayton had suspected, Black Michael accompanied
them to shore, and was the last to leave them when the small boats, having
filled the ship's casks with fresh water, were pushed out toward the waiting
Fuwalda.
As the boats moved
slowly over the smooth waters of the bay, Clayton and his wife stood silently
watching their departure--in the breasts of both a feeling of impending
disaster and utter hopelessness.
And behind them, over
the edge of a low ridge, other eyes watched--close set, wicked eyes, gleaming
beneath shaggy brows.
As the Fuwalda passed
through the narrow entrance to the harbor and out of sight behind a projecting
point, Lady Alice threw her arms about Clayton's neck and burst into uncontrolled
sobs.
Bravely had she faced
the dangers of the mutiny; with heroic fortitude she had looked into the
terrible future; but now that the horror of absolute solitude was upon them,
her overwrought nerves gave way, and the reaction came.
He did not attempt to
check her tears. It were better that nature have her way in relieving these
long-pent emotions, and it was many minutes before the girl--little more than a
child she was--could again gain mastery of herself.
“Oh, John,” she cried
at last, “the horror of it. What are we to do? What are we to do?”
“There is but one thing
to do, Alice,” and he spoke as quietly as though they were sitting in their
snug living room at home, “and that is work. Work must be our salvation. We
must not give ourselves time to think, for in that direction lies madness.
“We must work and wait.
I am sure that relief will come, and come quickly, when once it is apparent
that the Fuwalda has been lost, even though Black Michael does not keep his
word to us.”
“But John, if it were
only you and I,” she sobbed, “we could endure it I know; but--”
“Yes, dear,” he
answered, gently, “I have been thinking of that, also; but we must face it, as
we must face whatever comes, bravely and with the utmost confidence in our
ability to cope with circumstances whatever they may be.
“Hundreds of thousands
of years ago our ancestors of the dim and distant past faced the same problems
which we must face, possibly in these same primeval forests. That we are here
today evidences their victory.
“What they did may we
not do? And even better, for are we not armed with ages of superior knowledge,
and have we not the means of protection, defense, and sustenance which science
has given us, but of which they were totally ignorant? What they accomplished,
Alice, with instruments and weapons of stone and bone, surely that may we
accomplish also.”
“Ah, John, I wish that
I might be a man with a man's philosophy, but I am but a woman, seeing with my
heart rather than my head, and all that I can see is too horrible, too
unthinkable to put into words.
“I only hope you are
right, John. I will do my best to be a brave primeval woman, a fit mate for the
primeval man.”
Clayton's first thought
was to arrange a sleeping shelter for the night; something which might serve to
protect them from prowling beasts of prey.
He opened the box
containing his rifles and ammunition, that they might both be armed against
possible attack while at work, and then together they sought a location for
their first night's sleeping place.
A hundred yards from
the beach was a little level spot, fairly free of trees; here they decided
eventually to build a permanent house, but for the time being they both thought
it best to construct a little platform in the trees out of reach of the larger
of the savage beasts in whose realm they were.
To this end Clayton
selected four trees which formed a rectangle about eight feet square, and
cutting long branches from other trees he constructed a framework around them,
about ten feet from the ground, fastening the ends of the branches securely to
the trees by means of rope, a quantity of which Black Michael had furnished him
from the hold of the Fuwalda.
Across this framework
Clayton placed other smaller branches quite close together. This platform he
paved with the huge fronds of elephant's ear which grew in profusion about
them, and over the fronds he laid a great sail folded into several thicknesses.
Seven feet higher he
constructed a similar, though lighter platform to serve as roof, and from the
sides of this he suspended the balance of his sailcloth for walls.
When completed he had a
rather snug little nest, to which he carried their blankets and some of the
lighter luggage.
It was now late in the
afternoon, and the balance of the daylight hours were devoted to the building
of a rude ladder by means of which Lady Alice could mount to her new home.
All during the day the
forest about them had been filled with excited birds of brilliant plumage, and
dancing, chattering monkeys, who watched these new arrivals and their wonderful
nest building operations with every mark of keenest interest and fascination.
Notwithstanding that
both Clayton and his wife kept a sharp lookout they saw nothing of larger
animals, though on two occasions they had seen their little simian neighbors
come screaming and chattering from the near-by ridge, casting frightened
glances back over their little shoulders, and evincing as plainly as though by
speech that they were fleeing some terrible thing which lay concealed there.
Just before dusk
Clayton finished his ladder, and, filling a great basin with water from the
near-by stream, the two mounted to the comparative safety of their aerial
chamber.
As it was quite warm,
Clayton had left the side curtains thrown back over the roof, and as they sat,
like Turks, upon their blankets, Lady Alice, straining her eyes into the
darkening shadows of the wood, suddenly reached out and grasped Clayton's arms.
“John,” she whispered, “look!
What is it, a man?”
As Clayton turned his
eyes in the direction she indicated, he saw silhouetted dimly against the
shadows beyond, a great figure standing upright upon the ridge.
For a moment it stood
as though listening and then turned slowly, and melted into the shadows of the
jungle.
“What is it, John?”
“I do not know, Alice,”
he answered gravely, “it is too dark to see so far, and it may have been but a
shadow cast by the rising moon.”
“No, John, if it was
not a man it was some huge and grotesque mockery of man. Oh, I am afraid.”
He gathered her in his
arms, whispering words of courage and love into her ears.
Soon after, he lowered
the curtain walls, tying them securely to the trees so that, except for a
little opening toward the beach, they were entirely enclosed.
As it was now pitch
dark within their tiny aerie they lay down upon their blankets to try to gain,
through sleep, a brief respite of forgetfulness.
Clayton lay facing the
opening at the front, a rifle and a brace of revolvers at his hand.
Scarcely had they
closed their eyes than the terrifying cry of a panther rang out from the jungle
behind them. Closer and closer it came until they could hear the great beast
directly beneath them. For an hour or more they heard it sniffing and clawing
at the trees which supported their platform, but at last it roamed away across
the beach, where Clayton could see it clearly in the brilliant moonlight--a
great, handsome beast, the largest he had ever seen.
During the long hours
of darkness they caught but fitful snatches of sleep, for the night noises of a
great jungle teeming with myriad animal life kept their overwrought nerves on
edge, so that a hundred times they were startled to wakefulness by piercing
screams, or the stealthy moving of great bodies beneath them.
Morning found them but
little, if at all refreshed, though it was with a feeling of intense relief
that they saw the day dawn.
As soon as they had
made their meager breakfast of salt pork, coffee and biscuit, Clayton commenced
work upon their house, for he realized that they could hope for no safety and
no peace of mind at night until four strong walls effectually barred the jungle
life from them.
The task was an arduous
one and required the better part of a month, though he built but one small
room. He constructed his cabin of small logs about six inches in diameter,
stopping the chinks with clay which he found at the depth of a few feet beneath
the surface soil.
At one end he built a
fireplace of small stones from the beach. These also he set in clay and when
the house had been entirely completed he applied a coating of the clay to the
entire outside surface to the thickness of four inches.
In the window opening
he set small branches about an inch in diameter both vertically and
horizontally, and so woven that they formed a substantial grating that could
withstand the strength of a powerful animal. Thus they obtained air and proper
ventilation without fear of lessening the safety of their cabin.
The A-shaped roof was
thatched with small branches laid close together and over these long jungle
grass and palm fronds, with a final coating of clay.
The door he built of
pieces of the packing-boxes which had held their belongings, nailing one piece
upon another, the grain of contiguous layers running transversely, until he had
a solid body some three inches thick and of such great strength that they were
both moved to laughter as they gazed upon it.
Here the greatest
difficulty confronted Clayton, for he had no means whereby to hang his massive
door now that he had built it. After two days' work, however, he succeeded in
fashioning two massive hardwood hinges, and with these he hung the door so that
it opened and closed easily.
The stuccoing and other
final touches were added after they moved into the house, which they had done
as soon as the roof was on, piling their boxes before the door at night and
thus having a comparatively safe and comfortable habitation.
The building of a bed,
chairs, table, and shelves was a relatively easy matter, so that by the end of
the second month they were well settled, and, but for the constant dread of
attack by wild beasts and the ever growing loneliness, they were not
uncomfortable or unhappy.
At night great beasts
snarled and roared about their tiny cabin, but, so accustomed may one become to
oft repeated noises, that soon they paid little attention to them, sleeping
soundly the whole night through.
Thrice had they caught
fleeting glimpses of great man-like figures like that of the first night, but
never at sufficiently close range to know positively whether the half-seen
forms were those of man or brute.
The brilliant birds and
the little monkeys had become accustomed to their new acquaintances, and as
they had evidently never seen human beings before they presently, after their
first fright had worn off, approached closer and closer, impelled by that
strange curiosity which dominates the wild creatures of the forest and the
jungle and the plain, so that within the first month several of the birds had
gone so far as even to accept morsels of food from the friendly hands of the
Claytons.
One afternoon, while
Clayton was working upon an addition to their cabin, for he contemplated
building several more rooms, a number of their grotesque little friends came
shrieking and scolding through the trees from the direction of the ridge. Ever
as they fled they cast fearful glances back of them, and finally they stopped
near Clayton jabbering excitedly to him as though to warn him of approaching
danger.
At last he saw it, the
thing the little monkeys so feared-- the man-brute of which the Claytons had
caught occasional fleeting glimpses.
It was approaching
through the jungle in a semi-erect position, now and then placing the backs of
its closed fists upon the ground--a great anthropoid ape, and, as it advanced,
it emitted deep guttural growls and an occasional low barking sound.
Clayton was at some
distance from the cabin, having come to fell a particularly perfect tree for
his building operations. Grown careless from months of continued safety, during
which time he had seen no dangerous animals during the daylight hours, he had
left his rifles and revolvers all within the little cabin, and now that he saw
the great ape crashing through the underbrush directly toward him, and from a
direction which practically cut him off from escape, he felt a vague little
shiver play up and down his spine.
He knew that, armed
only with an ax, his chances with this ferocious monster were small indeed--and
Alice; O God, he thought, what will become of Alice?
There was yet a slight
chance of reaching the cabin. He turned and ran toward it, shouting an alarm to
his wife to run in and close the great door in case the ape cut off his
retreat.
Lady Greystoke had been
sitting a little way from the cabin, and when she heard his cry she looked up
to see the ape springing with almost incredible swiftness, for so large and
awkward an animal, in an effort to head off Clayton.
With a low cry she
sprang toward the cabin, and, as she entered, gave a backward glance which
filled her soul with terror, for the brute had intercepted her husband, who now
stood at bay grasping his ax with both hands ready to swing it upon the infuriated
animal when he should make his final charge.
“Close and bolt the
door, Alice,” cried Clayton. “I can finish this fellow with my ax.”
But he knew he was
facing a horrible death, and so did she.
The ape was a great
bull, weighing probably three hundred pounds. His nasty, close-set eyes gleamed
hatred from beneath his shaggy brows, while his great canine fangs were bared
in a horrid snarl as he paused a moment before his prey.
Over the brute's
shoulder Clayton could see the doorway of his cabin, not twenty paces distant,
and a great wave of horror and fear swept over him as he saw his young wife
emerge, armed with one of his rifles.
She had always been
afraid of firearms, and would never touch them, but now she rushed toward the
ape with the fearlessness of a lioness protecting its young.
“Back, Alice,” shouted
Clayton, “for God's sake, go back.”
But she would not heed,
and just then the ape charged, so that Clayton could say no more.
The man swung his ax
with all his mighty strength, but the powerful brute seized it in those
terrible hands, and tearing it from Clayton's grasp hurled it far to one side.
With an ugly snarl he
closed upon his defenseless victim, but ere his fangs had reached the throat
they thirsted for, there was a sharp report and a bullet entered the ape's back
between his shoulders.
Throwing Clayton to the
ground the beast turned upon his new enemy. There before him stood the
terrified girl vainly trying to fire another bullet into the animal's body; but
she did not understand the mechanism of the firearm, and the hammer fell
futilely upon an empty cartridge.
Almost simultaneously
Clayton regained his feet, and without thought of the utter hopelessness of it,
he rushed forward to drag the ape from his wife's prostrate form.
With little or no
effort he succeeded, and the great bulk rolled inertly upon the turf before
him--the ape was dead. The bullet had done its work.
A hasty examination of
his wife revealed no marks upon her, and Clayton decided that the huge brute
had died the instant he had sprung toward Alice.
Gently he lifted his
wife's still unconscious form, and bore her to the little cabin, but it was
fully two hours before she regained consciousness.
Her first words filled
Clayton with vague apprehension. For some time after regaining her senses,
Alice gazed wonderingly about the interior of the little cabin, and then, with
a satisfied sigh, said:
“O, John, it is so good
to be really home! I have had an awful dream, dear. I thought we were no longer
in London, but in some horrible place where great beasts attacked us.”
“There, there, Alice,”
he said, stroking her forehead, “try to sleep again, and do not worry your head
about bad dreams.”
That night a little son
was born in the tiny cabin beside the primeval forest, while a leopard screamed
before the door, and the deep notes of a lion's roar sounded from beyond the
ridge.
Lady Greystoke never
recovered from the shock of the great ape's attack, and, though she lived for a
year after her baby was born, she was never again outside the cabin, nor did
she ever fully realize that she was not in England.
Sometimes she would
question Clayton as to the strange noises of the nights; the absence of
servants and friends, and the strange rudeness of the furnishings within her
room, but, though he made no effort to deceive her, never could she grasp the
meaning of it all.
In other ways she was
quite rational, and the joy and happiness she took in the possession of her
little son and the constant attentions of her husband made that year a very
happy one for her, the happiest of her young life.
That it would have been
beset by worries and apprehension had she been in full command of her mental
faculties Clayton well knew; so that while he suffered terribly to see her so,
there were times when he was almost glad, for her sake, that she could not
understand.
Long since had he given
up any hope of rescue, except through accident. With unremitting zeal he had
worked to beautify the interior of the cabin.
Skins of lion and
panther covered the floor. Cupboards and bookcases lined the walls. Odd vases
made by his own hand from the clay of the region held beautiful tropical
flowers. Curtains of grass and bamboo covered the windows, and, most arduous
task of all, with his meager assortment of tools he had fashioned lumber to
neatly seal the walls and ceiling and lay a smooth floor within the cabin.
That he had been able
to turn his hands at all to such unaccustomed labor was a source of mild wonder
to him. But he loved the work because it was for her and the tiny life that had
come to cheer them, though adding a hundredfold to his responsibilities and to
the terribleness of their situation.
During the year that
followed, Clayton was several times attacked by the great apes which now seemed
to continually infest the vicinity of the cabin; but as he never again ventured
outside without both rifle and revolvers he had little fear of the huge beasts.
He had strengthened the
window protections and fitted a unique wooden lock to the cabin door, so that
when he hunted for game and fruits, as it was constantly necessary for him to
do to insure sustenance, he had no fear that any animal could break into the
little home.
At first he shot much
of the game from the cabin windows, but toward the end the animals learned to
fear the strange lair from whence issued the terrifying thunder of his rifle.
In his leisure Clayton
read, often aloud to his wife, from the store of books he had brought for their
new home. Among these were many for little children--picture books, primers,
readers--for they had known that their little child would be old enough for
such before they might hope to return to England.
At other times Clayton
wrote in his diary, which he had always been accustomed to keep in French, and
in which he recorded the details of their strange life. This book he kept
locked in a little metal box.
A year from the day her
little son was born Lady Alice passed quietly away in the night. So peaceful
was her end that it was hours before Clayton could awake to a realization that
his wife was dead.
The horror of the
situation came to him very slowly, and it is doubtful that he ever fully
realized the enormity of his sorrow and the fearful responsibility that had
devolved upon him with the care of that wee thing, his son, still a nursing
babe.
The last entry in his
diary was made the morning following her death, and there he recites the sad
details in a matter-of-fact way that adds to the pathos of it; for it breathes
a tired apathy born of long sorrow and hopelessness, which even this cruel blow
could scarcely awake to further suffering:
My little son is crying
for nourishment--O Alice, Alice, what shall I do?
And as John Clayton
wrote the last words his hand was destined ever to pen, he dropped his head
wearily upon his outstretched arms where they rested upon the table he had
built for her who lay still and cold in the bed beside him.
For a long time no sound
broke the deathlike stillness of the jungle midday save the piteous wailing of
the tiny man-child.
In the forest of the
table-land a mile back from the ocean old Kerchak the Ape was on a rampage of
rage among his people.
The younger and lighter
members of his tribe scampered to the higher branches of the great trees to
escape his wrath; risking their lives upon branches that scarce supported their
weight rather than face old Kerchak in one of his fits of uncontrolled anger.
The other males
scattered in all directions, but not before the infuriated brute had felt the
vertebra of one snap between his great, foaming jaws.
A luckless young female
slipped from an insecure hold upon a high branch and came crashing to the ground
almost at Kerchak's feet.
With a wild scream he
was upon her, tearing a great piece from her side with his mighty teeth, and
striking her viciously upon her head and shoulders with a broken tree limb
until her skull was crushed to a jelly.
And then he spied Kala,
who, returning from a search for food with her young babe, was ignorant of the
state of the mighty male's temper until suddenly the shrill warnings of her
fellows caused her to scamper madly for safety.
But Kerchak was close
upon her, so close that he had almost grasped her ankle had she not made a
furious leap far into space from one tree to another--a perilous chance which
apes seldom if ever take, unless so closely pursued by danger that there is no alternative.
She made the leap
successfully, but as she grasped the limb of the further tree the sudden jar
loosened the hold of the tiny babe where it clung frantically to her neck, and
she saw the little thing hurled, turning and twisting, to the ground thirty
feet below.
With a low cry of
dismay Kala rushed headlong to its side, thoughtless now of the danger from
Kerchak; but when she gathered the wee, mangled form to her bosom life had left
it.
With low moans, she sat
cuddling the body to her; nor did Kerchak attempt to molest her. With the death
of the babe his fit of demoniacal rage passed as suddenly as it had seized him.
Kerchak was a huge king
ape, weighing perhaps three hundred and fifty pounds. His forehead was
extremely low and receding, his eyes bloodshot, small and close set to his
coarse, flat nose; his ears large and thin, but smaller than most of his kind.
His awful temper and
his mighty strength made him supreme among the little tribe into which he had
been born some twenty years before.
Now that he was in his
prime, there was no simian in all the mighty forest through which he roved that
dared contest his right to rule, nor did the other and larger animals molest
him.
Old Tantor, the
elephant, alone of all the wild savage life, feared him not--and he alone did
Kerchak fear. When Tantor trumpeted, the great ape scurried with his fellows
high among the trees of the second terrace.
The tribe of
anthropoids over which Kerchak ruled with an iron hand and bared fangs,
numbered some six or eight families, each family consisting of an adult male
with his females and their young, numbering in all some sixty or seventy apes.
Kala was the youngest
mate of a male called Tublat, meaning broken nose, and the child she had seen
dashed to death was her first; for she was but nine or ten years old.
Notwithstanding her
youth, she was large and powerful--a splendid, clean-limbed animal, with a
round, high forehead, which denoted more intelligence than most of her kind
possessed. So, also, she had a great capacity for mother love and mother
sorrow.
But she was still an
ape, a huge, fierce, terrible beast of a species closely allied to the gorilla,
yet more intelligent; which, with the strength of their cousin, made her kind
the most fearsome of those awe-inspiring progenitors of man.
When the tribe saw that
Kerchak's rage had ceased they came slowly down from their arboreal retreats
and pursued again the various occupations which he had interrupted.
The young played and
frolicked about among the trees and bushes. Some of the adults lay prone upon
the soft mat of dead and decaying vegetation which covered the ground, while
others turned over pieces of fallen branches and clods of earth in search of
the small bugs and reptiles which formed a part of their food.
Others, again, searched
the surrounding trees for fruit, nuts, small birds, and eggs.
They had passed an hour
or so thus when Kerchak called them together, and, with a word of command to
them to follow him, set off toward the sea.
They traveled for the
most part upon the ground, where it was open, following the path of the great
elephants whose comings and goings break the only roads through those tangled
mazes of bush, vine, creeper, and tree. When they walked it was with a rolling,
awkward motion, placing the knuckles of their closed hands upon the ground and
swinging their ungainly bodies forward.
But when the way was
through the lower trees they moved more swiftly, swinging from branch to branch
with the agility of their smaller cousins, the monkeys. And all the way Kala
carried her little dead baby hugged closely to her breast.
It was shortly after
noon when they reached a ridge overlooking the beach where below them lay the
tiny cottage which was Kerchak's goal.
He had seen many of his
kind go to their deaths before the loud noise made by the little black stick in
the hands of the strange white ape who lived in that wonderful lair, and
Kerchak had made up his brute mind to own that death-dealing contrivance, and
to explore the interior of the mysterious den.
He wanted, very, very
much, to feel his teeth sink into the neck of the queer animal that he had
learned to hate and fear, and because of this, he came often with his tribe to
reconnoiter, waiting for a time when the white ape should be off his guard.
Of late they had quit
attacking, or even showing themselves; for every time they had done so in the
past the little stick had roared out its terrible message of death to some
member of the tribe.
Today there was no sign
of the man about, and from where they watched they could see that the cabin
door was open. Slowly, cautiously, and noiselessly they crept through the
jungle toward the little cabin.
There were no growls,
no fierce screams of rage--the little black stick had taught them to come
quietly lest they awaken it.
On, on they came until
Kerchak himself slunk stealthily to the very door and peered within. Behind him
were two males, and then Kala, closely straining the little dead form to her
breast.
Inside the den they saw
the strange white ape lying half across a table, his head buried in his arms;
and on the bed lay a figure covered by a sailcloth, while from a tiny rustic
cradle came the plaintive wailing of a babe.
Noiselessly Kerchak
entered, crouching for the charge; and then John Clayton rose with a sudden
start and faced them.
The sight that met his
eyes must have frozen him with horror, for there, within the door, stood three
great bull apes, while behind them crowded many more; how many he never knew,
for his revolvers were hanging on the far wall beside his rifle, and Kerchak
was charging.
When the king ape
released the limp form which had been John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, he turned
his attention toward the little cradle; but Kala was there before him, and when
he would have grasped the child she snatched it herself, and before he could
intercept her she had bolted through the door and taken refuge in a high tree.
As she took up the
little live baby of Alice Clayton she dropped the dead body of her own into the
empty cradle; for the wail of the living had answered the call of universal
motherhood within her wild breast which the dead could not still.
High up among the
branches of a mighty tree she hugged the shrieking infant to her bosom, and
soon the instinct that was as dominant in this fierce female as it had been in
the breast of his tender and beautiful mother--the instinct of mother
love--reached out to the tiny man-child's half-formed understanding, and he
became quiet.
Then hunger closed the
gap between them, and the son of an English lord and an English lady nursed at
the breast of Kala, the great ape.
In the meantime the
beasts within the cabin were warily examining the contents of this strange
lair.
Once satisfied that
Clayton was dead, Kerchak turned his attention to the thing which lay upon the
bed, covered by a piece of sailcloth.
Gingerly he lifted one
corner of the shroud, but when he saw the body of the woman beneath he tore the
cloth roughly from her form and seized the still, white throat in his huge,
hairy hands.
A moment he let his
fingers sink deep into the cold flesh, and then, realizing that she was already
dead, he turned from her, to examine the contents of the room; nor did he again
molest the body of either Lady Alice or Sir John.
The rifle hanging upon
the wall caught his first attention; it was for this strange, death-dealing
thunder-stick that he had yearned for months; but now that it was within his
grasp he scarcely had the temerity to seize it.
Cautiously he
approached the thing, ready to flee precipitately should it speak in its deep
roaring tones, as he had heard it speak before, the last words to those of his
kind who, through ignorance or rashness, had attacked the wonderful white ape
that had borne it.
Deep in the beast's
intelligence was something which assured him that the thunder-stick was only
dangerous when in the hands of one who could manipulate it, but yet it was
several minutes ere he could bring himself to touch it.
Instead, he walked back
and forth along the floor before it, turning his head so that never once did
his eyes leave the object of his desire.
Using his long arms as
a man uses crutches, and rolling his huge carcass from side to side with each
stride, the great king ape paced to and fro, uttering deep growls, occasionally
punctuated with the ear-piercing scream, than which there is no more terrifying
noise in all the jungle.
Presently he halted
before the rifle. Slowly he raised a huge hand until it almost touched the
shining barrel, only to withdraw it once more and continue his hurried pacing.
It was as though the
great brute by this show of fearlessness, and through the medium of his wild
voice, was endeavoring to bolster up his courage to the point which would
permit him to take the rifle in his hand.
Again he stopped, and
this time succeeded in forcing his reluctant hand to the cold steel, only to
snatch it away almost immediately and resume his restless beat.
Time after time this
strange ceremony was repeated, but on each occasion with increased confidence,
until, finally, the rifle was torn from its hook and lay in the grasp of the
great brute.
Finding that it harmed
him not, Kerchak began to examine it closely. He felt of it from end to end,
peered down the black depths of the muzzle, fingered the sights, the breech,
the stock, and finally the trigger.
During all these
operations the apes who had entered sat huddled near the door watching their
chief, while those outside strained and crowded to catch a glimpse of what
transpired within.
Suddenly Kerchak's
finger closed upon the trigger. There was a deafening roar in the little room
and the apes at and beyond the door fell over one another in their wild anxiety
to escape.
Kerchak was equally
frightened, so frightened, in fact, that he quite forgot to throw aside the
author of that fearful noise, but bolted for the door with it tightly clutched
in one hand.
As he passed through
the opening, the front sight of the rifle caught upon the edge of the inswung
door with sufficient force to close it tightly after the fleeing ape.
When Kerchak came to a
halt a short distance from the cabin and discovered that he still held the
rifle, he dropped it as he might have dropped a red hot iron, nor did he again
attempt to recover it--the noise was too much for his brute nerves; but he was
now quite convinced that the terrible stick was quite harmless by itself if
left alone.
It was an hour before
the apes could again bring themselves to approach the cabin to continue their
investigations, and when they finally did so, they found to their chagrin that
the door was closed and so securely fastened that they could not force it.
The cleverly constructed
latch which Clayton had made for the door had sprung as Kerchak passed out; nor
could the apes find means of ingress through the heavily barred windows.
After roaming about the
vicinity for a short time, they started back for the deeper forests and the
higher land from whence they had come.
Kala had not once come
to earth with her little adopted babe, but now Kerchak called to her to descend
with the rest, and as there was no note of anger in his voice she dropped
lightly from branch to branch and joined the others on their homeward march.
Those of the apes who
attempted to examine Kala's strange baby were repulsed with bared fangs and low
menacing growls, accompanied by words of warning from Kala.
When they assured her
that they meant the child no harm she permitted them to come close, but would
not allow them to touch her charge.
It was as though she
knew that her baby was frail and delicate and feared lest the rough hands of
her fellows might injure the little thing.
Another thing she did,
and which made traveling an onerous trial for her. Remembering the death of her
own little one, she clung desperately to the new babe, with one hand, whenever
they were upon the march.
The other young rode
upon their mothers' backs; their little arms tightly clasping the hairy necks
before them, while their legs were locked beneath their mothers' armpits.
Not so with Kala; she
held the small form of the little Lord Greystoke tightly to her breast, where
the dainty hands clutched the long black hair which covered that portion of her
body. She had seen one child fall from her back to a terrible death, and she
would take no further chances with this.
Tenderly Kala nursed
her little waif, wondering silently why it did not gain strength and agility as
did the little apes of other mothers. It was nearly a year from the time the
little fellow came into her possession before he would walk alone, and as for
climbing--my, but how stupid he was!
Kala sometimes talked
with the older females about her young hopeful, but none of them could
understand how a child could be so slow and backward in learning to care for
itself. Why, it could not even find food alone, and more than twelve moons had
passed since Kala had come upon it.
Had they known that the
child had seen thirteen moons before it had come into Kala's possession they
would have considered its case as absolutely hopeless, for the little apes of
their own tribe were as far advanced in two or three moons as was this little
stranger after twenty-five.
Tublat, Kala's husband,
was sorely vexed, and but for the female's careful watching would have put the
child out of the way.
“He will never be a
great ape,” he argued. “Always will you have to carry him and protect him. What
good will he be to the tribe? None; only a burden.
“Let us leave him
quietly sleeping among the tall grasses, that you may bear other and stronger
apes to guard us in our old age.”
“Never, Broken Nose,”
replied Kala. “If I must carry him forever, so be it.”
And then Tublat went to
Kerchak to urge him to use his authority with Kala, and force her to give up
little Tarzan, which was the name they had given to the tiny Lord Greystoke,
and which meant “White-Skin.”
But when Kerchak spoke
to her about it Kala threatened to run away from the tribe if they did not
leave her in peace with the child; and as this is one of the inalienable rights
of the jungle folk, if they be dissatisfied among their own people, they
bothered her no more, for Kala was a fine clean-limbed young female, and they
did not wish to lose her.
As Tarzan grew he made
more rapid strides, so that by the time he was ten years old he was an
excellent climber, and on the ground could do many wonderful things which were
beyond the powers of his little brothers and sisters.
In many ways did he
differ from them, and they often marveled at his superior cunning, but in
strength and size he was deficient; for at ten the great anthropoids were fully
grown, some of them towering over six feet in height, while little Tarzan was
still but a half-grown boy.
Yet such a boy!
From early childhood he
had used his hands to swing from branch to branch after the manner of his giant
mother, and as he grew older he spent hour upon hour daily speeding through the
tree tops with his brothers and sisters.
He could spring twenty
feet across space at the dizzy heights of the forest top, and grasp with
unerring precision, and without apparent jar, a limb waving wildly in the path
of an approaching tornado.
He could drop twenty
feet at a stretch from limb to limb in rapid descent to the ground, or he could
gain the utmost pinnacle of the loftiest tropical giant with the ease and
swiftness of a squirrel.
Though but ten years
old he was fully as strong as the average man of thirty, and far more agile
than the most practiced athlete ever becomes. And day by day his strength was
increasing.
His life among these
fierce apes had been happy; for his recollection held no other life, nor did he
know that there existed within the universe aught else than his little forest
and the wild jungle animals with which he was familiar.
He was nearly ten
before he commenced to realize that a great difference existed between himself
and his fellows. His little body, burned brown by exposure, suddenly caused him
feelings of intense shame, for he realized that it was entirely hairless, like
some low snake, or other reptile.
He attempted to obviate
this by plastering himself from head to foot with mud, but this dried and fell
off. Besides it felt so uncomfortable that he quickly decided that he preferred
the shame to the discomfort.
In the higher land
which his tribe frequented was a little lake, and it was here that Tarzan first
saw his face in the clear, still waters of its bosom.
It was on a sultry day
of the dry season that he and one of his cousins had gone down to the bank to
drink. As they leaned over, both little faces were mirrored on the placid pool;
the fierce and terrible features of the ape beside those of the aristocratic
scion of an old English house.
Tarzan was appalled. It
had been bad enough to be hairless, but to own such a countenance! He wondered
that the other apes could look at him at all.
That tiny slit of a
mouth and those puny white teeth! How they looked beside the mighty lips and
powerful fangs of his more fortunate brothers!
And the little pinched
nose of his; so thin was it that it looked half starved. He turned red as he
compared it with the beautiful broad nostrils of his companion. Such a generous
nose! Why it spread half across his face! It certainly must be fine to be so
handsome, thought poor little Tarzan.
But when he saw his own
eyes; ah, that was the final blow --a brown spot, a gray circle and then blank
whiteness! Frightful! not even the snakes had such hideous eyes as he.
So intent was he upon
this personal appraisement of his features that he did not hear the parting of
the tall grass behind him as a great body pushed itself stealthily through the
jungle; nor did his companion, the ape, hear either, for he was drinking and
the noise of his sucking lips and gurgles of satisfaction drowned the quiet
approach of the intruder.
Not thirty paces behind
the two she crouched--Sabor, the huge lioness--lashing her tail. Cautiously she
moved a great padded paw forward, noiselessly placing it before she lifted the
next. Thus she advanced; her belly low, almost touching the surface of the
ground--a great cat preparing to spring upon its prey.
Now she was within ten
feet of the two unsuspecting little playfellows--carefully she drew her hind
feet well up beneath her body, the great muscles rolling under the beautiful
skin.
So low she was
crouching now that she seemed flattened to the earth except for the upward bend
of the glossy back as it gathered for the spring.
No longer the tail
lashed--quiet and straight behind her it lay.
An instant she paused
thus, as though turned to stone, and then, with an awful scream, she sprang.
Sabor, the lioness, was
a wise hunter. To one less wise the wild alarm of her fierce cry as she sprang
would have seemed a foolish thing, for could she not more surely have fallen
upon her victims had she but quietly leaped without that loud shriek?
But Sabor knew well the
wondrous quickness of the jungle folk and their almost unbelievable powers of
hearing. To them the sudden scraping of one blade of grass across another was
as effectual a warning as her loudest cry, and Sabor knew that she could not
make that mighty leap without a little noise.
Her wild scream was not
a warning. It was voiced to freeze her poor victims in a paralysis of terror
for the tiny fraction of an instant which would suffice for her mighty claws to
sink into their soft flesh and hold them beyond hope of escape.
So far as the ape was
concerned, Sabor reasoned correctly. The little fellow crouched trembling just
an instant, but that instant was quite long enough to prove his undoing.
Not so, however, with
Tarzan, the man-child. His life amidst the dangers of the jungle had taught him
to meet emergencies with self-confidence, and his higher intelligence resulted
in a quickness of mental action far beyond the powers of the apes.
So the scream of Sabor,
the lioness, galvanized the brain and muscles of little Tarzan into instant
action.
Before him lay the deep
waters of the little lake, behind him certain death; a cruel death beneath
tearing claws and rending fangs.
Tarzan had always hated
water except as a medium for quenching his thirst. He hated it because he
connected it with the chill and discomfort of the torrential rains, and he
feared it for the thunder and lightning and wind which accompanied them.
The deep waters of the
lake he had been taught by his wild mother to avoid, and further, had he not
seen little Neeta sink beneath its quiet surface only a few short weeks before
never to return to the tribe?
But of the two evils
his quick mind chose the lesser ere the first note of Sabor's scream had scarce
broken the quiet of the jungle, and before the great beast had covered half her
leap Tarzan felt the chill waters close above his head.
He could not swim, and
the water was very deep; but still he lost no particle of that self-confidence
and resourcefulness which were the badges of his superior being.
Rapidly he moved his
hands and feet in an attempt to scramble upward, and, possibly more by chance
than design, he fell into the stroke that a dog uses when swimming, so that
within a few seconds his nose was above water and he found that he could keep
it there by continuing his strokes, and also make progress through the water.
He was much surprised
and pleased with this new acquirement which had been so suddenly thrust upon
him, but he had no time for thinking much upon it.
He was now swimming
parallel to the bank and there he saw the cruel beast that would have seized
him crouching upon the still form of his little playmate.
The lioness was
intently watching Tarzan, evidently expecting him to return to shore, but this
the boy had no intention of doing.
Instead he raised his
voice in the call of distress common to his tribe, adding to it the warning which
would prevent would-be rescuers from running into the clutches of Sabor.
Almost immediately
there came an answer from the distance, and presently forty or fifty great apes
swung rapidly and majestically through the trees toward the scene of tragedy.
In the lead was Kala,
for she had recognized the tones of her best beloved, and with her was the
mother of the little ape who lay dead beneath cruel Sabor.
Though more powerful
and better equipped for fighting than the apes, the lioness had no desire to
meet these enraged adults, and with a snarl of hatred she sprang quickly into
the brush and disappeared.
Tarzan now swam to
shore and clambered quickly upon dry land. The feeling of freshness and
exhilaration which the cool waters had imparted to him, filled his little being
with grateful surprise, and ever after he lost no opportunity to take a daily
plunge in lake or stream or ocean when it was possible to do so.
For a long time Kala
could not accustom herself to the sight; for though her people could swim when
forced to it, they did not like to enter water, and never did so voluntarily.
The adventure with the
lioness gave Tarzan food for pleasurable memories, for it was such affairs
which broke the monotony of his daily life--otherwise but a dull round of
searching for food, eating, and sleeping.
The tribe to which he
belonged roamed a tract extending, roughly, twenty-five miles along the
seacoast and some fifty miles inland. This they traversed almost continually,
occasionally remaining for months in one locality; but as they moved through
the trees with great speed they often covered the territory in a very few days.
Much depended upon food
supply, climatic conditions, and the prevalence of animals of the more
dangerous species; though Kerchak often led them on long marches for no other
reason than that he had tired of remaining in the same place.
At night they slept
where darkness overtook them, lying upon the ground, and sometimes covering
their heads, and more seldom their bodies, with the great leaves of the
elephant's ear. Two or three might lie cuddled in each other's arms for additional
warmth if the night were chill, and thus Tarzan had slept in Kala's arms
nightly for all these years.
That the huge, fierce
brute loved this child of another race is beyond question, and he, too, gave to
the great, hairy beast all the affection that would have belonged to his fair
young mother had she lived.
When he was disobedient
she cuffed him, it is true, but she was never cruel to him, and was more often
caressing him than chastising him.
Tublat, her mate,
always hated Tarzan, and on several occasions had come near ending his youthful
career.
Tarzan on his part
never lost an opportunity to show that he fully reciprocated his foster
father's sentiments, and whenever he could safely annoy him or make faces at
him or hurl insults upon him from the safety of his mother's arms, or the
slender branches of the higher trees, he did so.
His superior
intelligence and cunning permitted him to invent a thousand diabolical tricks
to add to the burdens of Tublat's life.
Early in his boyhood he
had learned to form ropes by twisting and tying long grasses together, and with
these he was forever tripping Tublat or attempting to hang him from some
overhanging branch.
By constant playing and
experimenting with these he learned to tie rude knots, and make sliding nooses;
and with these he and the younger apes amused themselves. What Tarzan did they
tried to do also, but he alone originated and became proficient.
One day while playing
thus Tarzan had thrown his rope at one of his fleeing companions, retaining the
other end in his grasp. By accident the noose fell squarely about the running
ape's neck, bringing him to a sudden and surprising halt.
Ah, here was a new
game, a fine game, thought Tarzan, and immediately he attempted to repeat the
trick. And thus, by painstaking and continued practice, he learned the art of
roping.
Now, indeed, was the
life of Tublat a living nightmare. In sleep, upon the march, night or day, he
never knew when that quiet noose would slip about his neck and nearly choke the
life out of him.
Kala punished, Tublat
swore dire vengeance, and old Kerchak took notice and warned and threatened;
but all to no avail.
Tarzan defied them all,
and the thin, strong noose continued to settle about Tublat's neck whenever he
least expected it.
The other apes derived
unlimited amusement from Tublat's discomfiture, for Broken Nose was a
disagreeable old fellow, whom no one liked, anyway.
In Tarzan's clever
little mind many thoughts revolved, and back of these was his divine power of
reason.
If he could catch his
fellow apes with his long arm of many grasses, why not Sabor, the lioness?
It was the germ of a
thought, which, however, was destined to mull around in his conscious and
subconscious mind until it resulted in magnificent achievement.
But that came in later
years.
The wanderings of the
tribe brought them often near the closed and silent cabin by the little
land-locked harbor. To Tarzan this was always a source of never-ending mystery
and pleasure.
He would peek into the
curtained windows, or, climbing upon the roof, peer down the black depths of
the chimney in vain endeavor to solve the unknown wonders that lay within those
strong walls.
His child-like
imagination pictured wonderful creatures within, and the very impossibility of
forcing entrance added a thousandfold to his desire to do so.
He could clamber about
the roof and windows for hours attempting to discover means of ingress, but to
the door he paid little attention, for this was apparently as solid as the
walls.
It was in the next
visit to the vicinity, following the adventure with old Sabor, that, as he
approached the cabin, Tarzan noticed that from a distance the door appeared to
be an independent part of the wall in which it was set, and for the first time
it occurred to him that this might prove the means of entrance which had so
long eluded him.
He was alone, as was
often the case when he visited the cabin, for the apes had no love for it; the
story of the thunder-stick having lost nothing in the telling during these ten
years had quite surrounded the white man's deserted abode with an atmosphere of
weirdness and terror for the simians.
The story of his own
connection with the cabin had never been told him. The language of the apes had
so few words that they could talk but little of what they had seen in the
cabin, having no words to accurately describe either the strange people or
their belongings, and so, long before Tarzan was old enough to understand, the
subject had been forgotten by the tribe.
Only in a dim, vague
way had Kala explained to him that his father had been a strange white ape, but
he did not know that Kala was not his own mother.
On this day, then, he
went directly to the door and spent hours examining it and fussing with the
hinges, the knob and the latch. Finally he stumbled upon the right combination,
and the door swung creakingly open before his astonished eyes.
For some minutes he did
not dare venture within, but finally, as his eyes became accustomed to the dim
light of the interior he slowly and cautiously entered.
In the middle of the
floor lay a skeleton, every vestige of flesh gone from the bones to which still
clung the mildewed and moldered remnants of what had once been clothing. Upon
the bed lay a similar gruesome thing, but smaller, while in a tiny cradle
near-by was a third, a wee mite of a skeleton.
To none of these
evidences of a fearful tragedy of a long dead day did little Tarzan give but
passing heed. His wild jungle life had inured him to the sight of dead and
dying animals, and had he known that he was looking upon the remains of his own
father and mother he would have been no more greatly moved.
The furnishings and
other contents of the room it was which riveted his attention. He examined many
things minutely--strange tools and weapons, books, paper, clothing-- what
little had withstood the ravages of time in the humid atmosphere of the jungle
coast.
He opened chests and
cupboards, such as did not baffle his small experience, and in these he found
the contents much better preserved.
Among other things he
found a sharp hunting knife, on the keen blade of which he immediately
proceeded to cut his finger. Undaunted he continued his experiments, finding
that he could hack and hew splinters of wood from the table and chairs with
this new toy.
For a long time this
amused him, but finally tiring he continued his explorations. In a cupboard
filled with books he came across one with brightly colored pictures--it was a
child's illustrated alphabet--
A is for Archer
Who shoots with a bow.
B is for Boy,
His first name is Joe.
The pictures interested
him greatly.
There were many apes
with faces similar to his own, and further over in the book he found, under “M,”
some little monkeys such as he saw daily flitting through the trees of his
primeval forest. But nowhere was pictured any of his own people; in all the
book was none that resembled Kerchak, or Tublat, or Kala.
At first he tried to
pick the little figures from the leaves, but he soon saw that they were not
real, though he knew not what they might be, nor had he any words to describe
them.
The boats, and trains,
and cows and horses were quite meaningless to him, but not quite so baffling as
the odd little figures which appeared beneath and between the colored
pictures--some strange kind of bug he thought they might be, for many of them
had legs though nowhere could he find one with eyes and a mouth. It was his
first introduction to the letters of the alphabet, and he was over ten years
old.
Of course he had never
before seen print, or ever had spoken with any living thing which had the remotest
idea that such a thing as a written language existed, nor ever had he seen
anyone reading.
So what wonder that the
little boy was quite at a loss to guess the meaning of these strange figures.
Near the middle of the
book he found his old enemy, Sabor, the lioness, and further on, coiled Histah,
the snake.
Oh, it was most
engrossing! Never before in all his ten years had he enjoyed anything so much.
So absorbed was he that he did not note the approaching dusk, until it was
quite upon him and the figures were blurred.
He put the book back in
the cupboard and closed the door, for he did not wish anyone else to find and
destroy his treasure, and as he went out into the gathering darkness he closed
the great door of the cabin behind him as it had been before he discovered the
secret of its lock, but before he left he had noticed the hunting knife lying
where he had thrown it upon the floor, and this he picked up and took with him
to show to his fellows.
He had taken scarce a
dozen steps toward the jungle when a great form rose up before him from the
shadows of a low bush. At first he thought it was one of his own people but in
another instant he realized that it was Bolgani, the huge gorilla.
So close was he that
there was no chance for flight and little Tarzan knew that he must stand and
fight for his life; for these great beasts were the deadly enemies of his
tribe, and neither one nor the other ever asked or gave quarter.
Had Tarzan been a
full-grown bull ape of the species of his tribe he would have been more than a
match for the gorilla, but being only a little English boy, though enormously
muscular for such, he stood no chance against his cruel antagonist. In his
veins, though, flowed the blood of the best of a race of mighty fighters, and back
of this was the training of his short lifetime among the fierce brutes of the
jungle.
He knew no fear, as we
know it; his little heart beat the faster but from the excitement and
exhilaration of adventure. Had the opportunity presented itself he would have
escaped, but solely because his judgment told him he was no match for the great
thing which confronted him. And since reason showed him that successful flight
was impossible he met the gorilla squarely and bravely without a tremor of a
single muscle, or any sign of panic.
In fact he met the
brute midway in its charge, striking its huge body with his closed fists and as
futilely as he had been a fly attacking an elephant. But in one hand he still
clutched the knife he had found in the cabin of his father, and as the brute,
striking and biting, closed upon him the boy accidentally turned the point
toward the hairy breast. As the knife sank deep into its body the gorilla
shrieked in pain and rage.
But the boy had learned
in that brief second a use for his sharp and shining toy, so that, as the
tearing, striking beast dragged him to earth he plunged the blade repeatedly
and to the hilt into its breast.
The gorilla, fighting
after the manner of its kind, struck terrific blows with its open hand, and
tore the flesh at the boy's throat and chest with its mighty tusks.
For a moment they
rolled upon the ground in the fierce frenzy of combat. More and more weakly the
torn and bleeding arm struck home with the long sharp blade, then the little
figure stiffened with a spasmodic jerk, and Tarzan, the young Lord Greystoke,
rolled unconscious upon the dead and decaying vegetation which carpeted his
jungle home.
A mile back in the
forest the tribe had heard the fierce challenge of the gorilla, and, as was his
custom when any danger threatened, Kerchak called his people together, partly
for mutual protection against a common enemy, since this gorilla might be but
one of a party of several, and also to see that all members of the tribe were
accounted for.
It was soon discovered
that Tarzan was missing, and Tublat was strongly opposed to sending assistance.
Kerchak himself had no liking for the strange little waif, so he listened to
Tublat, and, finally, with a shrug of his shoulders, turned back to the pile of
leaves on which he had made his bed.
But Kala was of a
different mind; in fact, she had not waited but to learn that Tarzan was absent
ere she was fairly flying through the matted branches toward the point from
which the cries of the gorilla were still plainly audible.
Darkness had now
fallen, and an early moon was sending its faint light to cast strange,
grotesque shadows among the dense foliage of the forest.
Here and there the
brilliant rays penetrated to earth, but for the most part they only served to
accentuate the Stygian blackness of the jungle's depths.
Like some huge phantom,
Kala swung noiselessly from tree to tree; now running nimbly along a great
branch, now swinging through space at the end of another, only to grasp that of
a farther tree in her rapid progress toward the scene of the tragedy her
knowledge of jungle life told her was being enacted a short distance before
her.
The cries of the
gorilla proclaimed that it was in mortal combat with some other denizen of the
fierce wood. Suddenly these cries ceased, and the silence of death reigned
throughout the jungle.
Kala could not
understand, for the voice of Bolgani had at last been raised in the agony of
suffering and death, but no sound had come to her by which she possibly could
determine the nature of his antagonist.
That her little Tarzan
could destroy a great bull gorilla she knew to be improbable, and so, as she
neared the spot from which the sounds of the struggle had come, she moved more
warily and at last slowly and with extreme caution she traversed the lowest
branches, peering eagerly into the moon-splashed blackness for a sign of the
combatants.
Presently she came upon
them, lying in a little open space full under the brilliant light of the
moon--little Tarzan's torn and bloody form, and beside it a great bull gorilla,
stone dead.
With a low cry Kala
rushed to Tarzan's side, and gathering the poor, blood-covered body to her
breast, listened for a sign of life. Faintly she heard it--the weak beating of
the little heart.
Tenderly she bore him
back through the inky jungle to where the tribe lay, and for many days and
nights she sat guard beside him, bringing him food and water, and brushing the
flies and other insects from his cruel wounds.
Of medicine or surgery
the poor thing knew nothing. She could but lick the wounds, and thus she kept
them cleansed, that healing nature might the more quickly do her work.
At first Tarzan would
eat nothing, but rolled and tossed in a wild delirium of fever. All he craved
was water, and this she brought him in the only way she could, bearing it in
her own mouth.
No human mother could
have shown more unselfish and sacrificing devotion than did this poor, wild
brute for the little orphaned waif whom fate had thrown into her keeping.
At last the fever
abated and the boy commenced to mend. No word of complaint passed his tight set
lips, though the pain of his wounds was excruciating.
A portion of his chest
was laid bare to the ribs, three of which had been broken by the mighty blows
of the gorilla. One arm was nearly severed by the giant fangs, and a great
piece had been torn from his neck, exposing his jugular vein, which the cruel
jaws had missed but by a miracle.
With the stoicism of
the brutes who had raised him he endured his suffering quietly, preferring to
crawl away from the others and lie huddled in some clump of tall grasses rather
than to show his misery before their eyes.
Kala, alone, he was
glad to have with him, but now that he was better she was gone longer at a
time, in search of food; for the devoted animal had scarcely eaten enough to
support her own life while Tarzan had been so low, and was in consequence,
reduced to a mere shadow of her former self.
After what seemed an
eternity to the little sufferer he was able to walk once more, and from then on
his recovery was so rapid that in another month he was as strong and active as
ever.
During his
convalescence he had gone over in his mind many times the battle with the
gorilla, and his first thought was to recover the wonderful little weapon which
had transformed him from a hopelessly outclassed weakling to the superior of
the mighty terror of the jungle.
Also, he was anxious to
return to the cabin and continue his investigations of its wondrous contents.
So, early one morning,
he set forth alone upon his quest. After a little search he located the
clean-picked bones of his late adversary, and close by, partly buried beneath
the fallen leaves, he found the knife, now red with rust from its exposure to
the dampness of the ground and from the dried blood of the gorilla.
He did not like the
change in its former bright and gleaming surface; but it was still a formidable
weapon, and one which he meant to use to advantage whenever the opportunity
presented itself. He had in mind that no more would he run from the wanton
attacks of old Tublat.
In another moment he
was at the cabin, and after a short time had again thrown the latch and
entered. His first concern was to learn the mechanism of the lock, and this he
did by examining it closely while the door was open, so that he could learn
precisely what caused it to hold the door, and by what means it released at his
touch.
He found that he could
close and lock the door from within, and this he did so that there would be no
chance of his being molested while at his investigation.
He commenced a
systematic search of the cabin; but his attention was soon riveted by the books
which seemed to exert a strange and powerful influence over him, so that he
could scarce attend to aught else for the lure of the wondrous puzzle which
their purpose presented to him.
Among the other books
were a primer, some child's readers, numerous picture books, and a great
dictionary. All of these he examined, but the pictures caught his fancy most,
though the strange little bugs which covered the pages where there were no
pictures excited his wonder and deepest thought.
Squatting upon his
haunches on the table top in the cabin his father had built--his smooth, brown,
naked little body bent over the book which rested in his strong slender hands,
and his great shock of long, black hair falling about his well-shaped head and
bright, intelligent eyes--Tarzan of the apes, little primitive man, presented a
picture filled, at once, with pathos and with promise--an allegorical figure of
the primordial groping through the black night of ignorance toward the light of
learning.
His little face was
tense in study, for he had partially grasped, in a hazy, nebulous way, the
rudiments of a thought which was destined to prove the key and the solution to
the puzzling problem of the strange little bugs.
In his hands was a
primer opened at a picture of a little ape similar to himself, but covered,
except for hands and face, with strange, colored fur, for such he thought the
jacket and trousers to be. Beneath the picture were three little bugs--
BOY.
And now he had
discovered in the text upon the page that these three were repeated many times
in the same sequence.
Another fact he
learned--that there were comparatively few individual bugs; but these were
repeated many times, occasionally alone, but more often in company with others.
Slowly he turned the
pages, scanning the pictures and the text for a repetition of the combination
B-O-Y. Presently he found it beneath a picture of another little ape and a
strange animal which went upon four legs like the jackal and resembled him not
a little. Beneath this picture the bugs appeared as:
A Boy and a Dog
There they were, the
three little bugs which always accompanied the little ape.
And so he progressed
very, very slowly, for it was a hard and laborious task which he had set
himself without knowing it--a task which might seem to you or me
impossible--learning to read without having the slightest knowledge of letters
or written language, or the faintest idea that such things existed.
He did not accomplish
it in a day, or in a week, or in a month, or in a year; but slowly, very
slowly, he learned after he had grasped the possibilities which lay in those
little bugs, so that by the time he was fifteen he knew the various
combinations of letters which stood for every pictured figure in the little
primer and in one or two of the picture books.
Of the meaning and use
of the articles and conjunctions, verbs and adverbs and pronouns he had but the
faintest conception.
One day when he was
about twelve he found a number of lead pencils in a hitherto undiscovered
drawer beneath the table, and in scratching upon the table top with one of them
he was delighted to discover the black line it left behind it.
He worked so
assiduously with this new toy that the table top was soon a mass of scrawly
loops and irregular lines and his pencil-point worn down to the wood. Then he
took another pencil, but this time he had a definite object in view.
He would attempt to
reproduce some of the little bugs that scrambled over the pages of his books.
It was a difficult
task, for he held the pencil as one would grasp the hilt of a dagger, which
does not add greatly to ease in writing or to the legibility of the results.
But he persevered for
months, at such times as he was able to come to the cabin, until at last by
repeated experimenting he found a position in which to hold the pencil that
best permitted him to guide and control it, so that at last he could roughly
reproduce any of the little bugs.
Thus he made a
beginning of writing.
Copying the bugs taught
him another thing--their number; and though he could not count as we understand
it, yet he had an idea of quantity, the base of his calculations being the
number of fingers upon one of his hands.
His search through the
various books convinced him that he had discovered all the different kinds of
bugs most often repeated in combination, and these he arranged in proper order
with great ease because of the frequency with which he had perused the
fascinating alphabet picture book.
His education
progressed; but his greatest finds were in the inexhaustible storehouse of the
huge illustrated dictionary, for he learned more through the medium of pictures
than text, even after he had grasped the significance of the bugs.
When he discovered the
arrangement of words in alphabetical order he delighted in searching for and
finding the combinations with which he was familiar, and the words which
followed them, their definitions, led him still further into the mazes of
erudition.
By the time he was
seventeen he had learned to read the simple, child's primer and had fully
realized the true and wonderful purpose of the little bugs.
No longer did he feel
shame for his hairless body or his human features, for now his reason told him
that he was of a different race from his wild and hairy companions. He was a
M-A-N, they were A-P-E-S, and the little apes which scurried through the forest
top were M-O-N-K-E-Y-S. He knew, too, that old Sabor was a L-I-O-N-E-S-S, and
Histah a S-N-A-K-E, and Tantor an E-L-E-P-H-A-N-T. And so he learned to read.
From then on his progress was rapid. With the help of the great dictionary and
the active intelligence of a healthy mind endowed by inheritance with more than
ordinary reasoning powers he shrewdly guessed at much which he could not really
understand, and more often than not his guesses were close to the mark of
truth.
There were many breaks
in his education, caused by the migratory habits of his tribe, but even when
removed from his books his active brain continued to search out the mysteries
of his fascinating avocation.
Pieces of bark and flat
leaves and even smooth stretches of bare earth provided him with copy books
whereon to scratch with the point of his hunting knife the lessons he was
learning.
Nor did he neglect the
sterner duties of life while following the bent of his inclination toward the
solving of the mystery of his library.
He practiced with his
rope and played with his sharp knife, which he had learned to keep keen by
whetting upon flat stones.
The tribe had grown
larger since Tarzan had come among them, for under the leadership of Kerchak
they had been able to frighten the other tribes from their part of the jungle
so that they had plenty to eat and little or no loss from predatory incursions
of neighbors.
Hence the younger males
as they became adult found it more comfortable to take mates from their own
tribe, or if they captured one of another tribe to bring her back to Kerchak's
band and live in amity with him rather than attempt to set up new
establishments of their own, or fight with the redoubtable Kerchak for
supremacy at home.
Occasionally one more
ferocious than his fellows would attempt this latter alternative, but none had
come yet who could wrest the palm of victory from the fierce and brutal ape.
Tarzan held a peculiar
position in the tribe. They seemed to consider him one of them and yet in some
way different. The older males either ignored him entirely or else hated him so
vindictively that but for his wondrous agility and speed and the fierce
protection of the huge Kala he would have been dispatched at an early age.
Tublat was his most
consistent enemy, but it was through Tublat that, when he was about thirteen,
the persecution of his enemies suddenly ceased and he was left severely alone,
except on the occasions when one of them ran amuck in the throes of one of
those strange, wild fits of insane rage which attacks the males of many of the
fiercer animals of the jungle. Then none was safe.
On the day that Tarzan
established his right to respect, the tribe was gathered about a small natural
amphitheater which the jungle had left free from its entangling vines and
creepers in a hollow among some low hills.
The open space was
almost circular in shape. Upon every hand rose the mighty giants of the
untouched forest, with the matted undergrowth banked so closely between the
huge trunks that the only opening into the little, level arena was through the
upper branches of the trees.
Here, safe from
interruption, the tribe often gathered. In the center of the amphitheater was
one of those strange earthen drums which the anthropoids build for the queer
rites the sounds of which men have heard in the fastnesses of the jungle, but
which none has ever witnessed.
Many travelers have
seen the drums of the great apes, and some have heard the sounds of their
beating and the noise of the wild, weird revelry of these first lords of the
jungle, but Tarzan, Lord Greystoke, is, doubtless, the only human being who
ever joined in the fierce, mad, intoxicating revel of the Dum-Dum.
From this primitive
function has arisen, unquestionably, all the forms and ceremonials of modern
church and state, for through all the countless ages, back beyond the uttermost
ramparts of a dawning humanity our fierce, hairy forebears danced out the rites
of the Dum-Dum to the sound of their earthen drums, beneath the bright light of
a tropical moon in the depth of a mighty jungle which stands unchanged today as
it stood on that long forgotten night in the dim, unthinkable vistas of the
long dead past when our first shaggy ancestor swung from a swaying bough and
dropped lightly upon the soft turf of the first meeting place.
On the day that Tarzan
won his emancipation from the persecution that had followed him remorselessly
for twelve of his thirteen years of life, the tribe, now a full hundred strong,
trooped silently through the lower terrace of the jungle trees and dropped
noiselessly upon the floor of the amphitheater.
The rites of the
Dum-Dum marked important events in the life of the tribe--a victory, the
capture of a prisoner, the killing of some large fierce denizen of the jungle,
the death or accession of a king, and were conducted with set ceremonialism.
Today it was the
killing of a giant ape, a member of another tribe, and as the people of Kerchak
entered the arena two mighty bulls were seen bearing the body of the vanquished
between them.
They laid their burden
before the earthen drum and then squatted there beside it as guards, while the
other members of the community curled themselves in grassy nooks to sleep until
the rising moon should give the signal for the commencement of their savage
orgy.
For hours absolute
quiet reigned in the little clearing, except as it was broken by the discordant
notes of brilliantly feathered parrots, or the screeching and twittering of the
thousand jungle birds flitting ceaselessly amongst the vivid orchids and
flamboyant blossoms which festooned the myriad, moss-covered branches of the
forest kings.
At length as darkness
settled upon the jungle the apes commenced to bestir themselves, and soon they
formed a great circle about the earthen drum. The females and young squatted in
a thin line at the outer periphery of the circle, while just in front of them
ranged the adult males. Before the drum sat three old females, each armed with
a knotted branch fifteen or eighteen inches in length.
Slowly and softly they
began tapping upon the resounding surface of the drum as the first faint rays
of the ascending moon silvered the encircling tree tops.
As the light in the
amphitheater increased the females augmented the frequency and force of their
blows until presently a wild, rhythmic din pervaded the great jungle for miles
in every direction. Huge, fierce brutes stopped in their hunting, with
up-pricked ears and raised heads, to listen to the dull booming that betokened
the Dum-Dum of the apes.
Occasionally one would
raise his shrill scream or thunderous roar in answering challenge to the savage
din of the anthropoids, but none came near to investigate or attack, for the
great apes, assembled in all the power of their numbers, filled the breasts of
their jungle neighbors with deep respect.
As the din of the drum
rose to almost deafening volume Kerchak sprang into the open space between the
squatting males and the drummers.
Standing erect he threw
his head far back and looking full into the eye of the rising moon he beat upon
his breast with his great hairy paws and emitted his fearful roaring shriek.
One--twice--thrice that
terrifying cry rang out across the teeming solitude of that unspeakably quick,
yet unthinkably dead, world.
Then, crouching,
Kerchak slunk noiselessly around the open circle, veering far away from the
dead body lying before the altar-drum, but, as he passed, keeping his little,
fierce, wicked, red eyes upon the corpse.
Another male then
sprang into the arena, and, repeating the horrid cries of his king, followed
stealthily in his wake. Another and another followed in quick succession until
the jungle reverberated with the now almost ceaseless notes of their
bloodthirsty screams.
It was the challenge
and the hunt.
When all the adult
males had joined in the thin line of circling dancers the attack commenced.
Kerchak, seizing a huge
club from the pile which lay at hand for the purpose, rushed furiously upon the
dead ape, dealing the corpse a terrific blow, at the same time emitting the
growls and snarls of combat. The din of the drum was now increased, as well as
the frequency of the blows, and the warriors, as each approached the victim of
the hunt and delivered his bludgeon blow, joined in the mad whirl of the Death
Dance.
Tarzan was one of the
wild, leaping horde. His brown, sweat-streaked, muscular body, glistening in
the moonlight, shone supple and graceful among the uncouth, awkward, hairy
brutes about him.
None was more stealthy
in the mimic hunt, none more ferocious than he in the wild ferocity of the
attack, none who leaped so high into the air in the Dance of Death.
As the noise and
rapidity of the drumbeats increased the dancers apparently became intoxicated
with the wild rhythm and the savage yells. Their leaps and bounds increased,
their bared fangs dripped saliva, and their lips and breasts were flecked with
foam.
For half an hour the
weird dance went on, until, at a sign from Kerchak, the noise of the drums
ceased, the female drummers scampering hurriedly through the line of dancers
toward the outer rim of squatting spectators. Then, as one, the males rushed
headlong upon the thing which their terrific blows had reduced to a mass of
hairy pulp.
Flesh seldom came to
their jaws in satisfying quantities, so a fit finale to their wild revel was a
taste of fresh killed meat, and it was to the purpose of devouring their late
enemy that they now turned their attention.
Great fangs sunk into
the carcass tearing away huge hunks, the mightiest of the apes obtaining the
choicest morsels, while the weaker circled the outer edge of the fighting,
snarling pack awaiting their chance to dodge in and snatch a dropped tidbit or
filch a remaining bone before all was gone.
Tarzan, more than the
apes, craved and needed flesh. Descended from a race of meat eaters, never in
his life, he thought, had he once satisfied his appetite for animal food; and
so now his agile little body wormed its way far into the mass of struggling,
rending apes in an endeavor to obtain a share which his strength would have
been unequal to the task of winning for him.
At his side hung the
hunting knife of his unknown father in a sheath self-fashioned in copy of one
he had seen among the pictures of his treasure-books.
At last he reached the
fast disappearing feast and with his sharp knife slashed off a more generous
portion than he had hoped for, an entire hairy forearm, where it protruded from
beneath the feet of the mighty Kerchak, who was so busily engaged in
perpetuating the royal prerogative of gluttony that he failed to note the act
of lese-majeste.
So little Tarzan
wriggled out from beneath the struggling mass, clutching his grisly prize close
to his breast.
Among those circling
futilely the outskirts of the banqueters was old Tublat. He had been among the
first at the feast, but had retreated with a goodly share to eat in quiet, and
was now forcing his way back for more.
So it was that he spied
Tarzan as the boy emerged from the clawing, pushing throng with that hairy
forearm hugged firmly to his body.
Tublat's little,
close-set, bloodshot, pig-eyes shot wicked gleams of hate as they fell upon the
object of his loathing. In them, too, was greed for the toothsome dainty the
boy carried.
But Tarzan saw his arch
enemy as quickly, and divining what the great beast would do he leaped nimbly
away toward the females and the young, hoping to hide himself among them.
Tublat, however, was close upon his heels, so that he had no opportunity to
seek a place of concealment, but saw that he would be put to it to escape at
all.
Swiftly he sped toward
the surrounding trees and with an agile bound gained a lower limb with one
hand, and then, transferring his burden to his teeth, he climbed rapidly
upward, closely followed by Tublat.
Up, up he went to the
waving pinnacle of a lofty monarch of the forest where his heavy pursuer dared
not follow him. There he perched, hurling taunts and insults at the raging,
foaming beast fifty feet below him.
And then Tublat went
mad.
With horrifying screams
and roars he rushed to the ground, among the females and young, sinking his
great fangs into a dozen tiny necks and tearing great pieces from the backs and
breasts of the females who fell into his clutches.
In the brilliant
moonlight Tarzan witnessed the whole mad carnival of rage. He saw the females
and the young scamper to the safety of the trees. Then the great bulls in the
center of the arena felt the mighty fangs of their demented fellow, and with
one accord they melted into the black shadows of the overhanging forest.
There was but one in
the amphitheater beside Tublat, a belated female running swiftly toward the
tree where Tarzan perched, and close behind her came the awful Tublat.
It was Kala, and as
quickly as Tarzan saw that Tublat was gaining on her he dropped with the
rapidity of a falling stone, from branch to branch, toward his foster mother.
Now she was beneath the
overhanging limbs and close above her crouched Tarzan, waiting the outcome of
the race.
She leaped into the air
grasping a low-hanging branch, but almost over the head of Tublat, so nearly
had he distanced her. She should have been safe now but there was a rending,
tearing sound, the branch broke and precipitated her full upon the head of
Tublat, knocking him to the ground.
Both were up in an
instant, but as quick as they had been Tarzan had been quicker, so that the
infuriated bull found himself facing the man-child who stood between him and
Kala.
Nothing could have
suited the fierce beast better, and with a roar of triumph he leaped upon the
little Lord Greystoke. But his fangs never closed in that nut brown flesh.
A muscular hand shot
out and grasped the hairy throat, and another plunged a keen hunting knife a
dozen times into the broad breast. Like lightning the blows fell, and only
ceased when Tarzan felt the limp form crumple beneath him.
As the body rolled to
the ground Tarzan of the Apes placed his foot upon the neck of his lifelong enemy
and, raising his eyes to the full moon, threw back his fierce young head and
voiced the wild and terrible cry of his people.
One by one the tribe
swung down from their arboreal retreats and formed a circle about Tarzan and
his vanquished foe. When they had all come Tarzan turned toward them.
“I am Tarzan,” he
cried. “I am a great killer. Let all respect Tarzan of the Apes and Kala, his
mother. There be none among you as mighty as Tarzan. Let his enemies beware.”
Looking full into the
wicked, red eyes of Kerchak, the young Lord Greystoke beat upon his mighty
breast and screamed out once more his shrill cry of defiance.
The morning after the
Dum-Dum the tribe started slowly back through the forest toward the coast.
The body of Tublat lay
where it had fallen, for the people of Kerchak do not eat their own dead.
The march was but a
leisurely search for food. Cabbage palm and gray plum, pisang and scitamine
they found in abundance, with wild pineapple, and occasionally small mammals,
birds, eggs, reptiles, and insects. The nuts they cracked between their
powerful jaws, or, if too hard, broke by pounding between stones.
Once old Sabor,
crossing their path, sent them scurrying to the safety of the higher branches,
for if she respected their number and their sharp fangs, they on their part
held her cruel and mighty ferocity in equal esteem.
Upon a low-hanging
branch sat Tarzan directly above the majestic, supple body as it forged
silently through the thick jungle. He hurled a pineapple at the ancient enemy
of his people. The great beast stopped and, turning, eyed the taunting figure
above her.
With an angry lash of
her tail she bared her yellow fangs, curling her great lips in a hideous snarl
that wrinkled her bristling snout in serried ridges and closed her wicked eyes
to two narrow slits of rage and hatred.
With back-laid ears she
looked straight into the eyes of Tarzan of the Apes and sounded her fierce,
shrill challenge. And from the safety of his overhanging limb the ape-child
sent back the fearsome answer of his kind.
For a moment the two
eyed each other in silence, and then the great cat turned into the jungle,
which swallowed her as the ocean engulfs a tossed pebble.
But into the mind of
Tarzan a great plan sprang. He had killed the fierce Tublat, so was he not
therefore a mighty fighter? Now would he track down the crafty Sabor and slay
her likewise. He would be a mighty hunter, also.
At the bottom of his
little English heart beat the great desire to cover his nakedness with clothes
for he had learned from his picture books that all men were so covered, while
monkeys and apes and every other living thing went naked.
CLOTHES therefore, must
be truly a badge of greatness; the insignia of the superiority of man over all
other animals, for surely there could be no other reason for wearing the
hideous things.
Many moons ago, when he
had been much smaller, he had desired the skin of Sabor, the lioness, or Numa,
the lion, or Sheeta, the leopard to cover his hairless body that he might no
longer resemble hideous Histah, the snake; but now he was proud of his sleek
skin for it betokened his descent from a mighty race, and the conflicting
desires to go naked in prideful proof of his ancestry, or to conform to the
customs of his own kind and wear hideous and uncomfortable apparel found first
one and then the other in the ascendency.
As the tribe continued
their slow way through the forest after the passing of Sabor, Tarzan's head was
filled with his great scheme for slaying his enemy, and for many days
thereafter he thought of little else.
On this day, however,
he presently had other and more immediate interests to attract his attention.
Suddenly it became as
midnight; the noises of the jungle ceased; the trees stood motionless as though
in paralyzed expectancy of some great and imminent disaster. All nature
waited--but not for long.
Faintly, from a
distance, came a low, sad moaning. Nearer and nearer it approached, mounting
louder and louder in volume.
The great trees bent in
unison as though pressed earthward by a mighty hand. Farther and farther toward
the ground they inclined, and still there was no sound save the deep and
awesome moaning of the wind.
Then, suddenly, the
jungle giants whipped back, lashing their mighty tops in angry and deafening
protest. A vivid and blinding light flashed from the whirling, inky clouds
above. The deep cannonade of roaring thunder belched forth its fearsome
challenge. The deluge came--all hell broke loose upon the jungle.
The tribe shivering
from the cold rain, huddled at the bases of great trees. The lightning, darting
and flashing through the blackness, showed wildly waving branches, whipping
streamers and bending trunks.
Now and again some
ancient patriarch of the woods, rent by a flashing bolt, would crash in a
thousand pieces among the surrounding trees, carrying down numberless branches
and many smaller neighbors to add to the tangled confusion of the tropical
jungle.
Branches, great and
small, torn away by the ferocity of the tornado, hurtled through the wildly
waving verdure, carrying death and destruction to countless unhappy denizens of
the thickly peopled world below.
For hours the fury of
the storm continued without surcease, and still the tribe huddled close in
shivering fear. In constant danger from falling trunks and branches and
paralyzed by the vivid flashing of lightning and the bellowing of thunder they
crouched in pitiful misery until the storm passed.
The end was as sudden
as the beginning. The wind ceased, the sun shone forth--nature smiled once
more.
The dripping leaves and
branches, and the moist petals of gorgeous flowers glistened in the splendor of
the returning day. And, so--as Nature forgot, her children forgot also. Busy
life went on as it had been before the darkness and the fright.
But to Tarzan a dawning
light had come to explain the mystery of clothes. How snug he would have been
beneath the heavy coat of Sabor! And so was added a further incentive to the
adventure.
For several months the
tribe hovered near the beach where stood Tarzan's cabin, and his studies took
up the greater portion of his time, but always when journeying through the
forest he kept his rope in readiness, and many were the smaller animals that
fell into the snare of the quick thrown noose.
Once it fell about the
short neck of Horta, the boar, and his mad lunge for freedom toppled Tarzan
from the overhanging limb where he had lain in wait and from whence he had
launched his sinuous coil.
The mighty tusker
turned at the sound of his falling body, and, seeing only the easy prey of a
young ape, he lowered his head and charged madly at the surprised youth.
Tarzan, happily, was
uninjured by the fall, alighting catlike upon all fours far outspread to take
up the shock. He was on his feet in an instant and, leaping with the agility of
the monkey he was, he gained the safety of a low limb as Horta, the boar,
rushed futilely beneath.
Thus it was that Tarzan
learned by experience the limitations as well as the possibilities of his
strange weapon.
He lost a long rope on
this occasion, but he knew that had it been Sabor who had thus dragged him from
his perch the outcome might have been very different, for he would have lost
his life, doubtless, into the bargain.
It took him many days
to braid a new rope, but when, finally, it was done he went forth purposely to
hunt, and lie in wait among the dense foliage of a great branch right above the
well-beaten trail that led to water.
Several small animals
passed unharmed beneath him. He did not want such insignificant game. It would
take a strong animal to test the efficacy of his new scheme.
At last came she whom
Tarzan sought, with lithe sinews rolling beneath shimmering hide; fat and
glossy came Sabor, the lioness.
Her great padded feet
fell soft and noiseless on the narrow trail. Her head was high in ever alert
attention; her long tail moved slowly in sinuous and graceful undulations.
Nearer and nearer she
came to where Tarzan of the Apes crouched upon his limb, the coils of his long
rope poised ready in his hand.
Like a thing of bronze,
motionless as death, sat Tarzan. Sabor passed beneath. One stride beyond she
took--a second, a third, and then the silent coil shot out above her.
For an instant the
spreading noose hung above her head like a great snake, and then, as she looked
upward to detect the origin of the swishing sound of the rope, it settled about
her neck. With a quick jerk Tarzan snapped the noose tight about the glossy
throat, and then he dropped the rope and clung to his support with both hands.
Sabor was trapped.
With a bound the
startled beast turned into the jungle, but Tarzan was not to lose another rope
through the same cause as the first. He had learned from experience. The
lioness had taken but half her second bound when she felt the rope tighten
about her neck; her body turned completely over in the air and she fell with a
heavy crash upon her back. Tarzan had fastened the end of the rope securely to
the trunk of the great tree on which he sat.
Thus far his plan had
worked to perfection, but when he grasped the rope, bracing himself behind a
crotch of two mighty branches, he found that dragging the mighty, struggling,
clawing, biting, screaming mass of iron-muscled fury up to the tree and hanging
her was a very different proposition.
The weight of old Sabor
was immense, and when she braced her huge paws nothing less than Tantor, the
elephant, himself, could have budged her.
The lioness was now
back in the path where she could see the author of the indignity which had been
placed upon her. Screaming with rage she suddenly charged, leaping high into
the air toward Tarzan, but when her huge body struck the limb on which Tarzan
had been, Tarzan was no longer there.
Instead he perched
lightly upon a smaller branch twenty feet above the raging captive. For a
moment Sabor hung half across the branch, while Tarzan mocked, and hurled twigs
and branches at her unprotected face.
Presently the beast
dropped to the earth again and Tarzan came quickly to seize the rope, but Sabor
had now found that it was only a slender cord that held her, and grasping it in
her huge jaws severed it before Tarzan could tighten the strangling noose a
second time.
Tarzan was much hurt.
His well-laid plan had come to naught, so he sat there screaming at the roaring
creature beneath him and making mocking grimaces at it.
Sabor paced back and
forth beneath the tree for hours; four times she crouched and sprang at the
dancing sprite above her, but might as well have clutched at the illusive wind
that murmured through the tree tops.
At last Tarzan tired of
the sport, and with a parting roar of challenge and a well-aimed ripe fruit
that spread soft and sticky over the snarling face of his enemy, he swung
rapidly through the trees, a hundred feet above the ground, and in a short time
was among the members of his tribe.
Here he recounted the
details of his adventure, with swelling chest and so considerable swagger that
he quite impressed even his bitterest enemies, while Kala fairly danced for joy
and pride.
Tarzan of the Apes
lived on in his wild, jungle existence with little change for several years,
only that he grew stronger and wiser, and learned from his books more and more
of the strange worlds which lay somewhere outside his primeval forest.
To him life was never
monotonous or stale. There was always Pisah, the fish, to be caught in the many
streams and the little lakes, and Sabor, with her ferocious cousins to keep one
ever on the alert and give zest to every instant that one spent upon the
ground.
Often they hunted him,
and more often he hunted them, but though they never quite reached him with
those cruel, sharp claws of theirs, yet there were times when one could scarce
have passed a thick leaf between their talons and his smooth hide.
Quick was Sabor, the
lioness, and quick were Numa and Sheeta, but Tarzan of the Apes was lightning.
With Tantor, the
elephant, he made friends. How? Ask not. But this is known to the denizens of
the jungle, that on many moonlight nights Tarzan of the Apes and Tantor, the
elephant, walked together, and where the way was clear Tarzan rode, perched
high upon Tantor's mighty back.
Many days during these
years he spent in the cabin of his father, where still lay, untouched, the
bones of his parents and the skeleton of Kala's baby. At eighteen he read
fluently and understood nearly all he read in the many and varied volumes on
the shelves.
Also could he write,
with printed letters, rapidly and plainly, but script he had not mastered, for
though there were several copy books among his treasure, there was so little
written English in the cabin that he saw no use for bothering with this other
form of writing, though he could read it, laboriously.
Thus, at eighteen, we
find him, an English lordling, who could speak no English, and yet who could
read and write his native language. Never had he seen a human being other than
himself, for the little area traversed by his tribe was watered by no greater
river to bring down the savage natives of the interior.
High hills shut it off
on three sides, the ocean on the fourth. It was alive with lions and leopards
and poisonous snakes. Its untouched mazes of matted jungle had as yet invited
no hardy pioneer from the human beasts beyond its frontier.
But as Tarzan of the
Apes sat one day in the cabin of his father delving into the mysteries of a new
book, the ancient security of his jungle was broken forever.
At the far eastern
confine a strange cavalcade strung, in single file, over the brow of a low
hill.
In advance were fifty
black warriors armed with slender wooden spears with ends hard baked over slow
fires, and long bows and poisoned arrows. On their backs were oval shields, in
their noses huge rings, while from the kinky wool of their heads protruded
tufts of gay feathers.
Across their foreheads
were tattooed three parallel lines of color, and on each breast three
concentric circles. Their yellow teeth were filed to sharp points, and their
great protruding lips added still further to the low and bestial brutishness of
their appearance.
Following them were
several hundred women and children, the former bearing upon their heads great
burdens of cooking pots, household utensils and ivory. In the rear were a
hundred warriors, similar in all respects to the advance guard.
That they more greatly
feared an attack from the rear than whatever unknown enemies lurked in their
advance was evidenced by the formation of the column; and such was the fact,
for they were fleeing from the white man's soldiers who had so harassed them for
rubber and ivory that they had turned upon their conquerors one day and
massacred a white officer and a small detachment of his black troops.
For many days they had
gorged themselves on meat, but eventually a stronger body of troops had come
and fallen upon their village by night to revenge the death of their comrades.
That night the black
soldiers of the white man had had meat a-plenty, and this little remnant of a
once powerful tribe had slunk off into the gloomy jungle toward the unknown,
and freedom.
But that which meant
freedom and the pursuit of happiness to these savage blacks meant consternation
and death to many of the wild denizens of their new home.
For three days the
little cavalcade marched slowly through the heart of this unknown and untracked
forest, until finally, early in the fourth day, they came upon a little spot
near the banks of a small river, which seemed less thickly overgrown than any
ground they had yet encountered.
Here they set to work
to build a new village, and in a month a great clearing had been made, huts and
palisades erected, plantains, yams and maize planted, and they had taken up
their old life in their new home. Here there were no white men, no soldiers,
nor any rubber or ivory to be gathered for cruel and thankless taskmasters.
Several moons passed by
ere the blacks ventured far into the territory surrounding their new village.
Several had already fallen prey to old Sabor, and because the jungle was so
infested with these fierce and bloodthirsty cats, and with lions and leopards,
the ebony warriors hesitated to trust themselves far from the safety of their
palisades.
But one day, Kulonga, a
son of the old king, Mbonga, wandered far into the dense mazes to the west.
Warily he stepped, his slender lance ever ready, his long oval shield firmly
grasped in his left hand close to his sleek ebony body.
At his back his bow,
and in the quiver upon his shield many slim, straight arrows, well smeared with
the thick, dark, tarry substance that rendered deadly their tiniest needle
prick.
Night found Kulonga far
from the palisades of his father's village, but still headed westward, and
climbing into the fork of a great tree he fashioned a rude platform and curled
himself for sleep.
Three miles to the west
slept the tribe of Kerchak.
Early the next morning
the apes were astir, moving through the jungle in search of food. Tarzan, as
was his custom, prosecuted his search in the direction of the cabin so that by
leisurely hunting on the way his stomach was filled by the time he reached the
beach.
The apes scattered by
ones, and twos, and threes in all directions, but ever within sound of a signal
of alarm.
Kala had moved slowly
along an elephant track toward the east, and was busily engaged in turning over
rotted limbs and logs in search of succulent bugs and fungi, when the faintest
shadow of a strange noise brought her to startled attention.
For fifty yards before
her the trail was straight, and down this leafy tunnel she saw the stealthy
advancing figure of a strange and fearful creature.
It was Kulonga.
Kala did not wait to
see more, but, turning, moved rapidly back along the trail. She did not run;
but, after the manner of her kind when not aroused, sought rather to avoid than
to escape.
Close after her came
Kulonga. Here was meat. He could make a killing and feast well this day. On he
hurried, his spear poised for the throw.
At a turning of the
trail he came in sight of her again upon another straight stretch. His spear
hand went far back the muscles rolled, lightning-like, beneath the sleek hide.
Out shot the arm, and the spear sped toward Kala.
A poor cast. It but
grazed her side.
With a cry of rage and
pain the she-ape turned upon her tormentor. In an instant the trees were
crashing beneath the weight of her hurrying fellows, swinging rapidly toward
the scene of trouble in answer to Kala's scream.
As she charged, Kulonga
unslung his bow and fitted an arrow with almost unthinkable quickness. Drawing
the shaft far back he drove the poisoned missile straight into the heart of the
great anthropoid.
With a horrid scream
Kala plunged forward upon her face before the astonished members of her tribe.
Roaring and shrieking
the apes dashed toward Kulonga, but that wary savage was fleeing down the trail
like a frightened antelope.
He knew something of
the ferocity of these wild, hairy men, and his one desire was to put as many
miles between himself and them as he possibly could.
They followed him,
racing through the trees, for a long distance, but finally one by one they
abandoned the chase and returned to the scene of the tragedy.
None of them had ever
seen a man before, other than Tarzan, and so they wondered vaguely what strange
manner of creature it might be that had invaded their jungle.
On the far beach by the
little cabin Tarzan heard the faint echoes of the conflict and knowing that
something was seriously amiss among the tribe he hastened rapidly toward the
direction of the sound.
When he arrived he
found the entire tribe gathered jabbering about the dead body of his slain
mother.
Tarzan's grief and
anger were unbounded. He roared out his hideous challenge time and again. He
beat upon his great chest with his clenched fists, and then he fell upon the
body of Kala and sobbed out the pitiful sorrowing of his lonely heart.
To lose the only
creature in all his world who ever had manifested love and affection for him
was the greatest tragedy he had ever known.
What though Kala was a
fierce and hideous ape! To Tarzan she had been kind, she had been beautiful.
Upon her he had
lavished, unknown to himself, all the reverence and respect and love that a
normal English boy feels for his own mother. He had never known another, and so
to Kala was given, though mutely, all that would have belonged to the fair and
lovely Lady Alice had she lived.
After the first
outburst of grief Tarzan controlled himself, and questioning the members of the
tribe who had witnessed the killing of Kala he learned all that their meager
vocabulary could convey.
It was enough, however,
for his needs. It told him of a strange, hairless, black ape with feathers
growing upon its head, who launched death from a slender branch, and then ran,
with the fleetness of Bara, the deer, toward the rising sun.
Tarzan waited no
longer, but leaping into the branches of the trees sped rapidly through the
forest. He knew the windings of the elephant trail along which Kala's murderer
had flown, and so he cut straight through the jungle to intercept the black
warrior who was evidently following the tortuous detours of the trail.
At his side was the
hunting knife of his unknown sire, and across his shoulders the coils of his
own long rope. In an hour he struck the trail again, and coming to earth
examined the soil minutely.
In the soft mud on the
bank of a tiny rivulet he found footprints such as he alone in all the jungle
had ever made, but much larger than his. His heart beat fast. Could it be that
he was trailing a man--one of his own race?
There were two sets of
imprints pointing in opposite directions. So his quarry had already passed on
his return along the trail. As he examined the newer spoor a tiny particle of
earth toppled from the outer edge of one of the footprints to the bottom of its
shallow depression--ah, the trail was very fresh, his prey must have but
scarcely passed.
Tarzan swung himself to
the trees once more, and with swift noiselessness sped along high above the
trail.
He had covered barely a
mile when he came upon the black warrior standing in a little open space. In
his hand was his slender bow to which he had fitted one of his death dealing
arrows.
Opposite him across the
little clearing stood Horta, the boar, with lowered head and foam flecked
tucks, ready to charge.
Tarzan looked with
wonder upon the strange creature beneath him--so like him in form and yet so
different in face and color. His books had portrayed the negro, but how different
had been the dull, dead print to this sleek thing of ebony, pulsing with life.
As the man stood there
with taut drawn bow Tarzan recognized him not so much the negro as the archer
of his picture book--
A stands for Archer
How wonderful! Tarzan
almost betrayed his presence in the deep excitement of his discovery.
But things were
commencing to happen below him. The sinewy black arm had drawn the shaft far
back; Horta, the boar, was charging, and then the black released the little
poisoned arrow, and Tarzan saw it fly with the quickness of thought and lodge
in the bristling neck of the boar.
Scarcely had the shaft
left his bow ere Kulonga had fitted another to it, but Horta, the boar, was
upon him so quickly that he had no time to discharge it. With a bound the black
leaped entirely over the rushing beast and turning with incredible swiftness
planted a second arrow in Horta's back.
Then Kulonga sprang
into a near-by tree.
Horta wheeled to charge
his enemy once more; a dozen steps he took, then he staggered and fell upon his
side. For a moment his muscles stiffened and relaxed convulsively, then he lay
still.
Kulonga came down from
his tree.
With a knife that hung
at his side he cut several large pieces from the boar's body, and in the center
of the trail he built a fire, cooking and eating as much as he wanted. The rest
he left where it had fallen.
Tarzan was an
interested spectator. His desire to kill burned fiercely in his wild breast,
but his desire to learn was even greater. He would follow this savage creature
for a while and know from whence he came. He could kill him at his leisure
later, when the bow and deadly arrows were laid aside.
When Kulonga had
finished his repast and disappeared beyond a near turning of the path, Tarzan
dropped quietly to the ground. With his knife he severed many strips of meat
from Horta's carcass, but he did not cook them.
He had seen fire, but
only when Ara, the lightning, had destroyed some great tree. That any creature
of the jungle could produce the red-and-yellow fangs which devoured wood and
left nothing but fine dust surprised Tarzan greatly, and why the black warrior
had ruined his delicious repast by plunging it into the blighting heat was
quite beyond him. Possibly Ara was a friend with whom the Archer was sharing
his food.
But, be that as it may,
Tarzan would not ruin good meat in any such foolish manner, so he gobbled down
a great quantity of the raw flesh, burying the balance of the carcass beside
the trail where he could find it upon his return.
And then Lord Greystoke
wiped his greasy fingers upon his naked thighs and took up the trail of
Kulonga, the son of Mbonga, the king; while in far-off London another Lord
Greystoke, the younger brother of the real Lord Greystoke's father, sent back
his chops to the club's chef because they were underdone, and when he had
finished his repast he dipped his finger-ends into a silver bowl of scented
water and dried them upon a piece of snowy damask.
All day Tarzan followed
Kulonga, hovering above him in the trees like some malign spirit. Twice more he
saw him hurl his arrows of destruction--once at Dango, the hyena, and again at
Manu, the monkey. In each instance the animal died almost instantly, for
Kulonga's poison was very fresh and very deadly.
Tarzan thought much on
this wondrous method of slaying as he swung slowly along at a safe distance
behind his quarry. He knew that alone the tiny prick of the arrow could not so
quickly dispatch these wild things of the jungle, who were often torn and
scratched and gored in a frightful manner as they fought with their jungle
neighbors, yet as often recovered as not.
No, there was something
mysterious connected with these tiny slivers of wood which could bring death by
a mere scratch. He must look into the matter.
That night Kulonga
slept in the crotch of a mighty tree and far above him crouched Tarzan of the
Apes.
When Kulonga awoke he
found that his bow and arrows had disappeared. The black warrior was furious
and frightened, but more frightened than furious. He searched the ground below
the tree, and he searched the tree above the ground; but there was no sign of
either bow or arrows or of the nocturnal marauder.
Kulonga was
panic-stricken. His spear he had hurled at Kala and had not recovered; and, now
that his bow and arrows were gone, he was defenseless except for a single
knife. His only hope lay in reaching the village of Mbonga as quickly as his
legs would carry him.
That he was not far
from home he was certain, so he took the trail at a rapid trot.
From a great mass of
impenetrable foliage a few yards away emerged Tarzan of the Apes to swing
quietly in his wake.
Kulonga's bow and
arrows were securely tied high in the top of a giant tree from which a patch of
bark had been removed by a sharp knife near to the ground, and a branch half
cut through and left hanging about fifty feet higher up. Thus Tarzan blazed the
forest trails and marked his caches.
As Kulonga continued
his journey Tarzan closed on him until he traveled almost over the black's
head. His rope he now held coiled in his right hand; he was almost ready for
the kill.
The moment was delayed
only because Tarzan was anxious to ascertain the black warrior's destination,
and presently he was rewarded, for they came suddenly in view of a great
clearing, at one end of which lay many strange lairs.
Tarzan was directly
over Kulonga, as he made the discovery. The forest ended abruptly and beyond
lay two hundred yards of planted fields between the jungle and the village.
Tarzan must act quickly
or his prey would be gone; but Tarzan's life training left so little space
between decision and action when an emergency confronted him that there was not
even room for the shadow of a thought between.
So it was that as
Kulonga emerged from the shadow of the jungle a slender coil of rope sped
sinuously above him from the lowest branch of a mighty tree directly upon the
edge of the fields of Mbonga, and ere the king's son had taken a half dozen
steps into the clearing a quick noose tightened about his neck.
So quickly did Tarzan
of the Apes drag back his prey that Kulonga's cry of alarm was throttled in his
windpipe. Hand over hand Tarzan drew the struggling black until he had him
hanging by his neck in mid-air; then Tarzan climbed to a larger branch drawing
the still threshing victim well up into the sheltering verdure of the tree.
Here he fastened the
rope securely to a stout branch, and then, descending, plunged his hunting
knife into Kulonga's heart. Kala was avenged.
Tarzan examined the
black minutely, for he had never seen any other human being. The knife with its
sheath and belt caught his eye; he appropriated them. A copper anklet also took
his fancy, and this he transferred to his own leg.
He examined and admired
the tattooing on the forehead and breast. He marveled at the sharp filed teeth.
He investigated and appropriated the feathered headdress, and then he prepared
to get down to business, for Tarzan of the Apes was hungry, and here was meat;
meat of the kill, which jungle ethics permitted him to eat.
How may we judge him,
by what standards, this ape-man with the heart and head and body of an English
gentleman, and the training of a wild beast?
Tublat, whom he had
hated and who had hated him, he had killed in a fair fight, and yet never had
the thought of eating Tublat's flesh entered his head. It could have been as
revolting to him as is cannibalism to us.
But who was Kulonga
that he might not be eaten as fairly as Horta, the boar, or Bara, the deer? Was
he not simply another of the countless wild things of the jungle who preyed
upon one another to satisfy the cravings of hunger?
Suddenly, a strange
doubt stayed his hand. Had not his books taught him that he was a man? And was
not The Archer a man, also?
Did men eat men? Alas,
he did not know. Why, then, this hesitancy! Once more he essayed the effort,
but a qualm of nausea overwhelmed him. He did not understand.
All he knew was that he
could not eat the flesh of this black man, and thus hereditary instinct, ages
old, usurped the functions of his untaught mind and saved him from
transgressing a worldwide law of whose very existence he was ignorant.
Quickly he lowered
Kulonga's body to the ground, removed the noose, and took to the trees again.
From a lofty perch
Tarzan viewed the village of thatched huts across the intervening plantation.
He saw that at one
point the forest touched the village, and to this spot he made his way, lured
by a fever of curiosity to behold animals of his own kind, and to learn more of
their ways and view the strange lairs in which they lived.
His savage life among
the fierce wild brutes of the jungle left no opening for any thought that these
could be aught else than enemies. Similarity of form led him into no erroneous
conception of the welcome that would be accorded him should he be discovered by
these, the first of his own kind he had ever seen.
Tarzan of the Apes was
no sentimentalist. He knew nothing of the brotherhood of man. All things
outside his own tribe were his deadly enemies, with the few exceptions of which
Tantor, the elephant, was a marked example.
And he realized all
this without malice or hatred. To kill was the law of the wild world he knew.
Few were his primitive pleasures, but the greatest of these was to hunt and
kill, and so he accorded to others the right to cherish the same desires as he,
even though he himself might be the object of their hunt.
His strange life had
left him neither morose nor bloodthirsty. That he joyed in killing, and that he
killed with a joyous laugh upon his handsome lips betokened no innate cruelty.
He killed for food most often, but, being a man, he sometimes killed for
pleasure, a thing which no other animal does; for it has remained for man alone
among all creatures to kill senselessly and wantonly for the mere pleasure of
inflicting suffering and death.
And when he killed for
revenge, or in self-defense, he did that also without hysteria, for it was a
very businesslike proceeding which admitted of no levity.
So it was that now, as
he cautiously approached the village of Mbonga, he was quite prepared either to
kill or be killed should he be discovered. He proceeded with unwonted stealth,
for Kulonga had taught him great respect for the little sharp splinters of wood
which dealt death so swiftly and unerringly.
At length he came to a
great tree, heavy laden with thick foliage and loaded with pendant loops of
giant creepers. From this almost impenetrable bower above the village he
crouched, looking down upon the scene below him, wondering over every feature
of this new, strange life.
There were naked
children running and playing in the village street. There were women grinding
dried plantain in crude stone mortars, while others were fashioning cakes from
the powdered flour. Out in the fields he could see still other women hoeing,
weeding, or gathering.
All wore strange
protruding girdles of dried grass about their hips and many were loaded with
brass and copper anklets, armlets and bracelets. Around many a dusky neck hung
curiously coiled strands of wire, while several were further ornamented by huge
nose rings.
Tarzan of the Apes
looked with growing wonder at these strange creatures. Dozing in the shade he
saw several men, while at the extreme outskirts of the clearing he occasionally
caught glimpses of armed warriors apparently guarding the village against
surprise from an attacking enemy.
He noticed that the
women alone worked. Nowhere was there evidence of a man tilling the fields or
performing any of the homely duties of the village.
Finally his eyes rested
upon a woman directly beneath him.
Before her was a small
cauldron standing over a low fire and in it bubbled a thick, reddish, tarry
mass. On one side of her lay a quantity of wooden arrows the points of which
she dipped into the seething substance, then laying them upon a narrow rack of
boughs which stood upon her other side.
Tarzan of the Apes was
fascinated. Here was the secret of the terrible destructiveness of The Archer's
tiny missiles. He noted the extreme care which the woman took that none of the
matter should touch her hands, and once when a particle spattered upon one of
her fingers he saw her plunge the member into a vessel of water and quickly rub
the tiny stain away with a handful of leaves.
Tarzan knew nothing of
poison, but his shrewd reasoning told him that it was this deadly stuff that
killed, and not the little arrow, which was merely the messenger that carried
it into the body of its victim.
How he should like to
have more of those little death-dealing slivers. If the woman would only leave
her work for an instant he could drop down, gather up a handful, and be back in
the tree again before she drew three breaths.
As he was trying to
think out some plan to distract her attention he heard a wild cry from across
the clearing. He looked and saw a black warrior standing beneath the very tree
in which he had killed the murderer of Kala an hour before.
The fellow was shouting
and waving his spear above his head. Now and again he would point to something
on the ground before him.
The village was in an
uproar instantly. Armed men rushed from the interior of many a hut and raced
madly across the clearing toward the excited sentry. After them trooped the old
men, and the women and children until, in a moment, the village was deserted.
Tarzan of the Apes knew
that they had found the body of his victim, but that interested him far less
than the fact that no one remained in the village to prevent his taking a
supply of the arrows which lay below him.
Quickly and noiselessly
he dropped to the ground beside the cauldron of poison. For a moment he stood
motionless, his quick, bright eyes scanning the interior of the palisade.
No one was in sight.
His eyes rested upon the open doorway of a nearby hut. He would take a look
within, thought Tarzan, and so, cautiously, he approached the low thatched
building.
For a moment he stood
without, listening intently. There was no sound, and he glided into the
semi-darkness of the interior.
Weapons hung against
the walls--long spears, strangely shaped knives, a couple of narrow shields. In
the center of the room was a cooking pot, and at the far end a litter of dry
grasses covered by woven mats which evidently served the owners as beds and
bedding. Several human skulls lay upon the floor.
Tarzan of the Apes felt
of each article, hefted the spears, smelled of them, for he “saw” largely
through his sensitive and highly trained nostrils. He determined to own one of
these long, pointed sticks, but he could not take one on this trip because of
the arrows he meant to carry.
As he took each article
from the walls, he placed it in a pile in the center of the room. On top of all
he placed the cooking pot, inverted, and on top of this he laid one of the
grinning skulls, upon which he fastened the headdress of the dead Kulonga.
Then he stood back,
surveyed his work, and grinned. Tarzan of the Apes enjoyed a joke.
But now he heard,
outside, the sounds of many voices, and long mournful howls, and mighty
wailing. He was startled. Had he remained too long? Quickly he reached the
doorway and peered down the village street toward the village gate.
The natives were not
yet in sight, though he could plainly hear them approaching across the
plantation. They must be very near.
Like a flash he sprang
across the opening to the pile of arrows. Gathering up all he could carry under
one arm, he overturned the seething cauldron with a kick, and disappeared into
the foliage above just as the first of the returning natives entered the gate
at the far end of the village street. Then he turned to watch the proceeding
below, poised like some wild bird ready to take swift wing at the first sign of
danger.
The natives filed up
the street, four of them bearing the dead body of Kulonga. Behind trailed the
women, uttering strange cries and weird lamentation. On they came to the
portals of Kulonga's hut, the very one in which Tarzan had wrought his
depredations.
Scarcely had half a
dozen entered the building ere they came rushing out in wild, jabbering
confusion. The others hastened to gather about. There was much excited
gesticulating, pointing, and chattering; then several of the warriors
approached and peered within.
Finally an old fellow
with many ornaments of metal about his arms and legs, and a necklace of dried
human hands depending upon his chest, entered the hut.
It was Mbonga, the
king, father of Kulonga.
For a few moments all
was silent. Then Mbonga emerged, a look of mingled wrath and superstitious fear
writ upon his hideous countenance. He spoke a few words to the assembled
warriors, and in an instant the men were flying through the little village
searching minutely every hut and corner within the palisades.
Scarcely had the search
commenced than the overturned cauldron was discovered, and with it the theft of
the poisoned arrows. Nothing more they found, and it was a thoroughly awed and
frightened group of savages which huddled around their king a few moments
later.
Mbonga could explain
nothing of the strange events that had taken place. The finding of the still
warm body of Kulonga--on the very verge of their fields and within easy earshot
of the village--knifed and stripped at the door of his father's home, was in
itself sufficiently mysterious, but these last awesome discoveries within the
village, within the dead Kulonga's own hut, filled their hearts with dismay,
and conjured in their poor brains only the most frightful of superstitious
explanations.
They stood in little
groups, talking in low tones, and ever casting affrighted glances behind them
from their great rolling eyes.
Tarzan of the Apes
watched them for a while from his lofty perch in the great tree. There was much
in their demeanor which he could not understand, for of superstition he was
ignorant, and of fear of any kind he had but a vague conception.
The sun was high in the
heavens. Tarzan had not broken fast this day, and it was many miles to where
lay the toothsome remains of Horta the boar.
So he turned his back
upon the village of Mbonga and melted away into the leafy fastness of the
forest.
It was not yet dark
when he reached the tribe, though he stopped to exhume and devour the remains
of the wild boar he had cached the preceding day, and again to take Kulonga's
bow and arrows from the tree top in which he had hidden them.
It was a well-laden
Tarzan who dropped from the branches into the midst of the tribe of Kerchak.
With swelling chest he
narrated the glories of his adventure and exhibited the spoils of conquest.
Kerchak grunted and
turned away, for he was jealous of this strange member of his band. In his
little evil brain he sought for some excuse to wreak his hatred upon Tarzan.
The next day Tarzan was
practicing with his bow and arrows at the first gleam of dawn. At first he lost
nearly every bolt he shot, but finally he learned to guide the little shafts
with fair accuracy, and ere a month had passed he was no mean shot; but his
proficiency had cost him nearly his entire supply of arrows.
The tribe continued to
find the hunting good in the vicinity of the beach, and so Tarzan of the Apes
varied his archery practice with further investigation of his father's choice
though little store of books.
It was during this
period that the young English lord found hidden in the back of one of the
cupboards in the cabin a small metal box. The key was in the lock, and a few
moments of investigation and experimentation were rewarded with the successful
opening of the receptacle.
In it he found a faded
photograph of a smooth faced young man, a golden locket studded with diamonds,
linked to a small gold chain, a few letters and a small book.
Tarzan examined these
all minutely.
The photograph he liked
most of all, for the eyes were smiling, and the face was open and frank. It was
his father.
The locket, too, took
his fancy, and he placed the chain about his neck in imitation of the
ornamentation he had seen to be so common among the black men he had visited.
The brilliant stones gleamed strangely against his smooth, brown hide.
The letters he could
scarcely decipher for he had learned little or nothing of script, so he put
them back in the box with the photograph and turned his attention to the book.
This was almost
entirely filled with fine script, but while the little bugs were all familiar
to him, their arrangement and the combinations in which they occurred were
strange, and entirely incomprehensible.
Tarzan had long since
learned the use of the dictionary, but much to his sorrow and perplexity it
proved of no avail to him in this emergency. Not a word of all that was writ in
the book could he find, and so he put it back in the metal box, but with a
determination to work out the mysteries of it later on.
Little did he know that
this book held between its covers the key to his origin--the answer to the
strange riddle of his strange life. It was the diary of John Clayton, Lord
Greystoke--kept in French, as had always been his custom.
Tarzan replaced the box
in the cupboard, but always thereafter he carried the features of the strong,
smiling face of his father in his heart, and in his head a fixed determination
to solve the mystery of the strange words in the little black book.
At present he had more
important business in hand, for his supply of arrows was exhausted, and he must
needs journey to the black men's village and renew it.
Early the following
morning he set out, and, traveling rapidly, he came before midday to the
clearing. Once more he took up his position in the great tree, and, as before,
he saw the women in the fields and the village street, and the cauldron of bubbling
poison directly beneath him.
For hours he lay
awaiting his opportunity to drop down unseen and gather up the arrows for which
he had come; but nothing now occurred to call the villagers away from their
homes. The day wore on, and still Tarzan of the Apes crouched above the
unsuspecting woman at the cauldron.
Presently the workers
in the fields returned. The hunting warriors emerged from the forest, and when
all were within the palisade the gates were closed and barred.
Many cooking pots were
now in evidence about the village. Before each hut a woman presided over a
boiling stew, while little cakes of plantain, and cassava puddings were to be
seen on every hand.
Suddenly there came a
hail from the edge of the clearing.
Tarzan looked.
It was a party of
belated hunters returning from the north, and among them they half led, half
carried a struggling animal.
As they approached the
village the gates were thrown open to admit them, and then, as the people saw
the victim of the chase, a savage cry rose to the heavens, for the quarry was a
man.
As he was dragged,
still resisting, into the village street, the women and children set upon him
with sticks and stones, and Tarzan of the Apes, young and savage beast of the
jungle, wondered at the cruel brutality of his own kind.
Sheeta, the leopard,
alone of all the jungle folk, tortured his prey. The ethics of all the others
meted a quick and merciful death to their victims.
Tarzan had learned from
his books but scattered fragments of the ways of human beings.
When he had followed
Kulonga through the forest he had expected to come to a city of strange houses
on wheels, puffing clouds of black smoke from a huge tree stuck in the roof of
one of them--or to a sea covered with mighty floating buildings which he had
learned were called, variously, ships and boats and steamers and craft.
He had been sorely
disappointed with the poor little village of the blacks, hidden away in his own
jungle, and with not a single house as large as his own cabin upon the distant
beach.
He saw that these
people were more wicked than his own apes, and as savage and cruel as Sabor,
herself. Tarzan began to hold his own kind in low esteem.
Now they had tied their
poor victim to a great post near the center of the village, directly before
Mbonga's hut, and here they formed a dancing, yelling circle of warriors about
him, alive with flashing knives and menacing spears.
In a larger circle
squatted the women, yelling and beating upon drums. It reminded Tarzan of the
Dum-Dum, and so he knew what to expect. He wondered if they would spring upon
their meat while it was still alive. The Apes did not do such things as that.
The circle of warriors
about the cringing captive drew closer and closer to their prey as they danced
in wild and savage abandon to the maddening music of the drums. Presently a
spear reached out and pricked the victim. It was the signal for fifty others.
Eyes, ears, arms and
legs were pierced; every inch of the poor writhing body that did not cover a
vital organ became the target of the cruel lancers.
The women and children
shrieked their delight.
The warriors licked
their hideous lips in anticipation of the feast to come, and vied with one
another in the savagery and loathsomeness of the cruel indignities with which
they tortured the still conscious prisoner.
Then it was that Tarzan
of the Apes saw his chance. All eyes were fixed upon the thrilling spectacle at
the stake. The light of day had given place to the darkness of a moonless
night, and only the fires in the immediate vicinity of the orgy had been kept
alight to cast a restless glow upon the restless scene.
Gently the lithe boy
dropped to the soft earth at the end of the village street. Quickly he gathered
up the arrows--all of them this time, for he had brought a number of long
fibers to bind them into a bundle.
Without haste he
wrapped them securely, and then, ere he turned to leave, the devil of
capriciousness entered his heart. He looked about for some hint of a wild prank
to play upon these strange, grotesque creatures that they might be again aware
of his presence among them.
Dropping his bundle of
arrows at the foot of the tree, Tarzan crept among the shadows at the side of
the street until he came to the same hut he had entered on the occasion of his
first visit.
Inside all was
darkness, but his groping hands soon found the object for which he sought, and
without further delay he turned again toward the door.
He had taken but a
step, however, ere his quick ear caught the sound of approaching footsteps
immediately without. In another instant the figure of a woman darkened the
entrance of the hut.
Tarzan drew back
silently to the far wall, and his hand sought the long, keen hunting knife of
his father. The woman came quickly to the center of the hut. There she paused
for an instant feeling about with her hands for the thing she sought. Evidently
it was not in its accustomed place, for she explored ever nearer and nearer the
wall where Tarzan stood.
So close was she now
that the ape-man felt the animal warmth of her naked body. Up went the hunting
knife, and then the woman turned to one side and soon a guttural “ah”
proclaimed that her search had at last been successful.
Immediately she turned
and left the hut, and as she passed through the doorway Tarzan saw that she
carried a cooking pot in her hand.
He followed closely
after her, and as he reconnoitered from the shadows of the doorway he saw that
all the women of the village were hastening to and from the various huts with
pots and kettles. These they were filling with water and placing over a number
of fires near the stake where the dying victim now hung, an inert and bloody
mass of suffering.
Choosing a moment when
none seemed near, Tarzan hastened to his bundle of arrows beneath the great
tree at the end of the village street. As on the former occasion he overthrew
the cauldron before leaping, sinuous and catlike, into the lower branches of
the forest giant.
Silently he climbed to
a great height until he found a point where he could look through a leafy
opening upon the scene beneath him.
The women were now
preparing the prisoner for their cooking pots, while the men stood about
resting after the fatigue of their mad revel. Comparative quiet reigned in the
village.
Tarzan raised aloft the
thing he had pilfered from the hut, and, with aim made true by years of fruit
and coconut throwing, launched it toward the group of savages.
Squarely among them it
fell, striking one of the warriors full upon the head and felling him to the
ground. Then it rolled among the women and stopped beside the half-butchered
thing they were preparing to feast upon.
All gazed in
consternation at it for an instant, and then, with one accord, broke and ran
for their huts.
It was a grinning human
skull which looked up at them from the ground. The dropping of the thing out of
the open sky was a miracle well aimed to work upon their superstitious fears.
Thus Tarzan of the Apes
left them filled with terror at this new manifestation of the presence of some
unseen and unearthly evil power which lurked in the forest about their village.
Later, when they
discovered the overturned cauldron, and that once more their arrows had been
pilfered, it commenced to dawn upon them that they had offended some great god
by placing their village in this part of the jungle without propitiating him.
From then on an offering of food was daily placed below the great tree from
whence the arrows had disappeared in an effort to conciliate the mighty one.
But the seed of fear
was deep sown, and had he but known it, Tarzan of the Apes had laid the
foundation for much future misery for himself and his tribe.
That night he slept in
the forest not far from the village, and early the next morning set out slowly
on his homeward march, hunting as he traveled. Only a few berries and an
occasional grub worm rewarded his search, and he was half famished when, looking
up from a log he had been rooting beneath, he saw Sabor, the lioness, standing
in the center of the trail not twenty paces from him.
The great yellow eyes
were fixed upon him with a wicked and baleful gleam, and the red tongue licked
the longing lips as Sabor crouched, worming her stealthy way with belly
flattened against the earth.
Tarzan did not attempt
to escape. He welcomed the opportunity for which, in fact, he had been
searching for days past, now that he was armed with something more than a rope of
grass.
Quickly he unslung his
bow and fitted a well-daubed arrow, and as Sabor sprang, the tiny missile
leaped to meet her in mid-air. At the same instant Tarzan of the Apes jumped to
one side, and as the great cat struck the ground beyond him another
death-tipped arrow sunk deep into Sabor's loin.
With a mighty roar the
beast turned and charged once more, only to be met with a third arrow full in
one eye; but this time she was too close to the ape-man for the latter to
sidestep the onrushing body.
Tarzan of the Apes went
down beneath the great body of his enemy, but with gleaming knife drawn and
striking home. For a moment they lay there, and then Tarzan realized that the
inert mass lying upon him was beyond power ever again to injure man or ape.
With difficulty he
wriggled from beneath the great weight, and as he stood erect and gazed down
upon the trophy of his skill, a mighty wave of exultation swept over him.
With swelling breast,
he placed a foot upon the body of his powerful enemy, and throwing back his
fine young head, roared out the awful challenge of the victorious bull ape.
The forest echoed to
the savage and triumphant paean. Birds fell still, and the larger animals and
beasts of prey slunk stealthily away, for few there were of all the jungle who
sought for trouble with the great anthropoids.
And in London another
Lord Greystoke was speaking to his kind in the House of Lords, but none
trembled at the sound of his soft voice.
Sabor proved unsavory
eating even to Tarzan of the Apes, but hunger served as a most efficacious
disguise to toughness and rank taste, and ere long, with well-filled stomach,
the ape-man was ready to sleep again. First, however, he must remove the hide,
for it was as much for this as for any other purpose that he had desired to
destroy Sabor.
Deftly he removed the
great pelt, for he had practiced often on smaller animals. When the task was
finished he carried his trophy to the fork of a high tree, and there, curling
himself securely in a crotch, he fell into deep and dreamless slumber.
What with loss of
sleep, arduous exercise, and a full belly, Tarzan of the Apes slept the sun
around, awakening about noon of the following day. He straightway repaired to
the carcass of Sabor, but was angered to find the bones picked clean by other
hungry denizens of the jungle.
Half an hour's
leisurely progress through the forest brought to sight a young deer, and before
the little creature knew that an enemy was near a tiny arrow had lodged in its
neck.
So quickly the virus
worked that at the end of a dozen leaps the deer plunged headlong into the
undergrowth, dead. Again did Tarzan feast well, but this time he did not sleep.
Instead, he hastened on
toward the point where he had left the tribe, and when he had found them
proudly exhibited the skin of Sabor, the lioness.
“Look!” he cried, “Apes
of Kerchak. See what Tarzan, the mighty killer, has done. Who else among you
has ever killed one of Numa's people? Tarzan is mightiest amongst you for
Tarzan is no ape. Tarzan is--” But here he stopped, for in the language of the
anthropoids there was no word for man, and Tarzan could only write the word in
English; he could not pronounce it.
The tribe had gathered
about to look upon the proof of his wondrous prowess, and to listen to his
words.
Only Kerchak hung back,
nursing his hatred and his rage.
Suddenly something
snapped in the wicked little brain of the anthropoid. With a frightful roar the
great beast sprang among the assemblage.
Biting, and striking
with his huge hands, he killed and maimed a dozen ere the balance could escape
to the upper terraces of the forest.
Frothing and shrieking
in the insanity of his fury, Kerchak looked about for the object of his
greatest hatred, and there, upon a near-by limb, he saw him sitting.
“Come down, Tarzan,
great killer,” cried Kerchak. “Come down and feel the fangs of a greater! Do
mighty fighters fly to the trees at the first approach of danger?” And then
Kerchak emitted the volleying challenge of his kind.
Quietly Tarzan dropped
to the ground. Breathlessly the tribe watched from their lofty perches as
Kerchak, still roaring, charged the relatively puny figure.
Nearly seven feet stood
Kerchak on his short legs. His enormous shoulders were bunched and rounded with
huge muscles. The back of his short neck was as a single lump of iron sinew
which bulged beyond the base of his skull, so that his head seemed like a small
ball protruding from a huge mountain of flesh.
His back-drawn,
snarling lips exposed his great fighting fangs, and his little, wicked,
blood-shot eyes gleamed in horrid reflection of his madness.
Awaiting him stood
Tarzan, himself a mighty muscled animal, but his six feet of height and his
great rolling sinews seemed pitifully inadequate to the ordeal which awaited
them.
His bow and arrows lay
some distance away where he had dropped them while showing Sabor's hide to his
fellow apes, so that he confronted Kerchak now with only his hunting knife and
his superior intellect to offset the ferocious strength of his enemy.
As his antagonist came
roaring toward him, Lord Greystoke tore his long knife from its sheath, and
with an answering challenge as horrid and bloodcurdling as that of the beast he
faced, rushed swiftly to meet the attack. He was too shrewd to allow those long
hairy arms to encircle him, and just as their bodies were about to crash
together, Tarzan of the Apes grasped one of the huge wrists of his assailant,
and, springing lightly to one side, drove his knife to the hilt into Kerchak's
body, below the heart.
Before he could wrench
the blade free again, the bull's quick lunge to seize him in those awful arms
had torn the weapon from Tarzan's grasp.
Kerchak aimed a
terrific blow at the ape-man's head with the flat of his hand, a blow which,
had it landed, might easily have crushed in the side of Tarzan's skull.
The man was too quick,
and, ducking beneath it, himself delivered a mighty one, with clenched fist, in
the pit of Kerchak's stomach.
The ape was staggered,
and what with the mortal wound in his side had almost collapsed, when, with one
mighty effort he rallied for an instant--just long enough to enable him to
wrest his arm free from Tarzan's grasp and close in a terrific clinch with his
wiry opponent.
Straining the ape-man
close to him, his great jaws sought Tarzan's throat, but the young lord's
sinewy fingers were at Kerchak's own before the cruel fangs could close on the
sleek brown skin.
Thus they struggled,
the one to crush out his opponent's life with those awful teeth, the other to
close forever the windpipe beneath his strong grasp while he held the snarling
mouth from him.
The greater strength of
the ape was slowly prevailing, and the teeth of the straining beast were scarce
an inch from Tarzan's throat when, with a shuddering tremor, the great body
stiffened for an instant and then sank limply to the ground.
Kerchak was dead.
Withdrawing the knife
that had so often rendered him master of far mightier muscles than his own,
Tarzan of the Apes placed his foot upon the neck of his vanquished enemy, and
once again, loud through the forest rang the fierce, wild cry of the conqueror.
And thus came the young
Lord Greystoke into the kingship of the Apes.
There was one of the
tribe of Tarzan who questioned his authority, and that was Terkoz, the son of
Tublat, but he so feared the keen knife and the deadly arrows of his new lord
that he confined the manifestation of his objections to petty disobediences and
irritating mannerisms; Tarzan knew, however, that he but waited his opportunity
to wrest the kingship from him by some sudden stroke of treachery, and so he
was ever on his guard against surprise.
For months the life of
the little band went on much as it had before, except that Tarzan's greater
intelligence and his ability as a hunter were the means of providing for them
more bountifully than ever before. Most of them, therefore, were more than
content with the change in rulers.
Tarzan led them by
night to the fields of the black men, and there, warned by their chief's superior
wisdom, they ate only what they required, nor ever did they destroy what they
could not eat, as is the way of Manu, the monkey, and of most apes.
So, while the blacks
were wroth at the continued pilfering of their fields, they were not
discouraged in their efforts to cultivate the land, as would have been the case
had Tarzan permitted his people to lay waste the plantation wantonly.
During this period
Tarzan paid many nocturnal visits to the village, where he often renewed his
supply of arrows. He soon noticed the food always standing at the foot of the
tree which was his avenue into the palisade, and after a little, he commenced
to eat whatever the blacks put there.
When the awe-struck
savages saw that the food disappeared overnight they were filled with
consternation and dread, for it was one thing to put food out to propitiate a
god or a devil, but quite another thing to have the spirit really come into the
village and eat it. Such a thing was unheard of, and it clouded their
superstitious minds with all manner of vague fears.
Nor was this all. The
periodic disappearance of their arrows, and the strange pranks perpetrated by
unseen hands, had wrought them to such a state that life had become a veritable
burden in their new home, and now it was that Mbonga and his head men began to
talk of abandoning the village and seeking a site farther on in the jungle.
Presently the black
warriors began to strike farther and farther south into the heart of the forest
when they went to hunt, looking for a site for a new village.
More often was the
tribe of Tarzan disturbed by these wandering huntsmen. Now was the quiet,
fierce solitude of the primeval forest broken by new, strange cries. No longer
was there safety for bird or beast. Man had come.
Other animals passed up
and down the jungle by day and by night--fierce, cruel beasts--but their weaker
neighbors only fled from their immediate vicinity to return again when the
danger was past.
With man it is
different. When he comes many of the larger animals instinctively leave the
district entirely, seldom if ever to return; and thus it has always been with
the great anthropoids. They flee man as man flees a pestilence.
For a short time the
tribe of Tarzan lingered in the vicinity of the beach because their new chief
hated the thought of leaving the treasured contents of the little cabin
forever. But when one day a member of the tribe discovered the blacks in great
numbers on the banks of a little stream that had been their watering place for
generations, and in the act of clearing a space in the jungle and erecting many
huts, the apes would remain no longer; and so Tarzan led them inland for many
marches to a spot as yet undefiled by the foot of a human being.
Once every moon Tarzan
would go swinging rapidly back through the swaying branches to have a day with
his books, and to replenish his supply of arrows. This latter task was becoming
more and more difficult, for the blacks had taken to hiding their supply away
at night in granaries and living huts.
This necessitated
watching by day on Tarzan's part to discover where the arrows were being
concealed.
Twice had he entered
huts at night while the inmates lay sleeping upon their mats, and stolen the
arrows from the very sides of the warriors. But this method he realized to be
too fraught with danger, and so he commenced picking up solitary hunters with
his long, deadly noose, stripping them of weapons and ornaments and dropping
their bodies from a high tree into the village street during the still watches
of the night.
These various escapades
again so terrorized the blacks that, had it not been for the monthly respite
between Tarzan's visits, in which they had opportunity to renew hope that each
fresh incursion would prove the last, they soon would have abandoned their new
village.
The blacks had not as
yet come upon Tarzan's cabin on the distant beach, but the ape-man lived in
constant dread that, while he was away with the tribe, they would discover and
despoil his treasure. So it came that he spent more and more time in the
vicinity of his father's last home, and less and less with the tribe. Presently
the members of his little community began to suffer on account of his neglect,
for disputes and quarrels constantly arose which only the king might settle
peaceably.
At last some of the
older apes spoke to Tarzan on the subject, and for a month thereafter he
remained constantly with the tribe.
The duties of kingship
among the anthropoids are not many or arduous.
In the afternoon comes
Thaka, possibly, to complain that old Mungo has stolen his new wife. Then must
Tarzan summon all before him, and if he finds that the wife prefers her new
lord he commands that matters remain as they are, or possibly that Mungo give
Thaka one of his daughters in exchange.
Whatever his decision,
the apes accept it as final, and return to their occupations satisfied.
Then comes Tana,
shrieking and holding tight her side from which blood is streaming. Gunto, her
husband, has cruelly bitten her! And Gunto, summoned, says that Tana is lazy
and will not bring him nuts and beetles, or scratch his back for him.
So Tarzan scolds them
both and threatens Gunto with a taste of the death-bearing slivers if he abuses
Tana further, and Tana, for her part, is compelled to promise better attention
to her wifely duties.
And so it goes, little
family differences for the most part, which, if left unsettled would result
finally in greater factional strife, and the eventual dismemberment of the
tribe.
But Tarzan tired of it,
as he found that kingship meant the curtailment of his liberty. He longed for
the little cabin and the sun-kissed sea--for the cool interior of the
well-built house, and for the never-ending wonders of the many books.
As he had grown older,
he found that he had grown away from his people. Their interests and his were
far removed. They had not kept pace with him, nor could they understand aught of
the many strange and wonderful dreams that passed through the active brain of
their human king. So limited was their vocabulary that Tarzan could not even
talk with them of the many new truths, and the great fields of thought that his
reading had opened up before his longing eyes, or make known ambitions which
stirred his soul.
Among the tribe he no
longer had friends as of old. A little child may find companionship in many
strange and simple creatures, but to a grown man there must be some semblance of
equality in intellect as the basis for agreeable association.
Had Kala lived, Tarzan
would have sacrificed all else to remain near her, but now that she was dead,
and the playful friends of his childhood grown into fierce and surly brutes he
felt that he much preferred the peace and solitude of his cabin to the irksome
duties of leadership amongst a horde of wild beasts.
The hatred and jealousy
of Terkoz, son of Tublat, did much to counteract the effect of Tarzan's desire
to renounce his kingship among the apes, for, stubborn young Englishman that he
was, he could not bring himself to retreat in the face of so malignant an
enemy.
That Terkoz would be
chosen leader in his stead he knew full well, for time and again the ferocious
brute had established his claim to physical supremacy over the few bull apes
who had dared resent his savage bullying.
Tarzan would have liked
to subdue the ugly beast without recourse to knife or arrows. So much had his
great strength and agility increased in the period following his maturity that
he had come to believe that he might master the redoubtable Terkoz in a hand to
hand fight were it not for the terrible advantage the anthropoid's huge
fighting fangs gave him over the poorly armed Tarzan.
The entire matter was
taken out of Tarzan's hands one day by force of circumstances, and his future
left open to him, so that he might go or stay without any stain upon his savage
escutcheon.
It happened thus:
The tribe was feeding
quietly, spread over a considerable area, when a great screaming arose some
distance east of where Tarzan lay upon his belly beside a limpid brook,
attempting to catch an elusive fish in his quick, brown hands.
With one accord the
tribe swung rapidly toward the frightened cries, and there found Terkoz holding
an old female by the hair and beating her unmercifully with his great hands.
As Tarzan approached he
raised his hand aloft for Terkoz to desist, for the female was not his, but
belonged to a poor old ape whose fighting days were long over, and who,
therefore, could not protect his family.
Terkoz knew that it was
against the laws of his kind to strike this woman of another, but being a
bully, he had taken advantage of the weakness of the female's husband to
chastise her because she had refused to give up to him a tender young rodent
she had captured.
When Terkoz saw Tarzan
approaching without his arrows, he continued to belabor the poor woman in a
studied effort to affront his hated chieftain.
Tarzan did not repeat
his warning signal, but instead rushed bodily upon the waiting Terkoz.
Never had the ape-man
fought so terrible a battle since that long-gone day when Bolgani, the great
king gorilla had so horribly manhandled him ere the new-found knife had, by
accident, pricked the savage heart.
Tarzan's knife on the
present occasion but barely offset the gleaming fangs of Terkoz, and what
little advantage the ape had over the man in brute strength was almost balanced
by the latter's wonderful quickness and agility.
In the sum total of their
points, however, the anthropoid had a shade the better of the battle, and had
there been no other personal attribute to influence the final outcome, Tarzan
of the Apes, the young Lord Greystoke, would have died as he had lived--an
unknown savage beast in equatorial Africa.
But there was that
which had raised him far above his fellows of the jungle--that little spark
which spells the whole vast difference between man and brute--Reason. This it
was which saved him from death beneath the iron muscles and tearing fangs of
Terkoz.
Scarcely had they
fought a dozen seconds ere they were rolling upon the ground, striking, tearing
and rending--two great savage beasts battling to the death.
Terkoz had a dozen
knife wounds on head and breast, and Tarzan was torn and bleeding--his scalp in
one place half torn from his head so that a great piece hung down over one eye,
obstructing his vision.
But so far the young
Englishman had been able to keep those horrible fangs from his jugular and now,
as they fought less fiercely for a moment, to regain their breath, Tarzan
formed a cunning plan. He would work his way to the other's back and, clinging
there with tooth and nail, drive his knife home until Terkoz was no more.
The maneuver was
accomplished more easily than he had hoped, for the stupid beast, not knowing
what Tarzan was attempting, made no particular effort to prevent the
accomplishment of the design.
But when, finally, he
realized that his antagonist was fastened to him where his teeth and fists
alike were useless against him, Terkoz hurled himself about upon the ground so
violently that Tarzan could but cling desperately to the leaping, turning,
twisting body, and ere he had struck a blow the knife was hurled from his hand
by a heavy impact against the earth, and Tarzan found himself defenseless.
During the rollings and
squirmings of the next few minutes, Tarzan's hold was loosened a dozen times
until finally an accidental circumstance of those swift and everchanging
evolutions gave him a new hold with his right hand, which he realized was
absolutely unassailable.
His arm was passed
beneath Terkoz's arm from behind and his hand and forearm encircled the back of
Terkoz's neck. It was the half-Nelson of modern wrestling which the untaught
ape-man had stumbled upon, but superior reason showed him in an instant the
value of the thing he had discovered. It was the difference to him between life
and death.
And so he struggled to
encompass a similar hold with the left hand, and in a few moments Terkoz's bull
neck was creaking beneath a full-Nelson.
There was no more
lunging about now. The two lay perfectly still upon the ground, Tarzan upon
Terkoz's back. Slowly the bullet head of the ape was being forced lower and
lower upon his chest.
Tarzan knew what the
result would be. In an instant the neck would break. Then there came to
Terkoz's rescue the same thing that had put him in these sore straits--a man's
reasoning power.
“If I kill him,”
thought Tarzan, “what advantage will it be to me? Will it not rob the tribe of
a great fighter? And if Terkoz be dead, he will know nothing of my supremacy,
while alive he will ever be an example to the other apes.”
“Ka-goda?” hissed
Tarzan in Terkoz's ear, which, in ape tongue, means, freely translated: “Do you
surrender?”
For a moment there was
no reply, and Tarzan added a few more ounces of pressure, which elicited a
horrified shriek of pain from the great beast.
“Ka-goda?” repeated
Tarzan.
“Ka-goda!” cried
Terkoz.
“Listen,” said Tarzan,
easing up a trifle, but not releasing his hold. “I am Tarzan, King of the Apes,
mighty hunter, mighty fighter. In all the jungle there is none so great.
“You have said: ‘ka-goda’
to me. All the tribe have heard. Quarrel no more with your king or your people,
for next time I shall kill you. Do you understand?”
“Huh,” assented Terkoz.
“And you are satisfied?”
“Huh,” said the ape.
Tarzan let him up, and
in a few minutes all were back at their vocations, as though naught had
occurred to mar the tranquility of their primeval forest haunts.
But deep in the minds
of the apes was rooted the conviction that Tarzan was a mighty fighter and a
strange creature. Strange because he had had it in his power to kill his enemy,
but had allowed him to live--unharmed.
That afternoon as the
tribe came together, as was their wont before darkness settled on the jungle,
Tarzan, his wounds washed in the waters of the stream, called the old males
about him.
“You have seen again
to-day that Tarzan of the Apes is the greatest among you,” he said.
“Huh,” they replied
with one voice, “Tarzan is great.”
“Tarzan,” he continued,
“is not an ape. He is not like his people. His ways are not their ways, and so
Tarzan is going back to the lair of his own kind by the waters of the great
lake which has no farther shore. You must choose another to rule you, for
Tarzan will not return.”
And thus young Lord
Greystoke took the first step toward the goal which he had set--the finding of other
white men like himself.
The following morning,
Tarzan, lame and sore from the wounds of his battle with Terkoz, set out toward
the west and the seacoast.
He traveled very
slowly, sleeping in the jungle at night, and reaching his cabin late the
following morning.
For several days he
moved about but little, only enough to gather what fruits and nuts he required
to satisfy the demands of hunger.
In ten days he was quite
sound again, except for a terrible, half-healed scar, which, starting above his
left eye ran across the top of his head, ending at the right ear. It was the
mark left by Terkoz when he had torn the scalp away.
During his
convalescence Tarzan tried to fashion a mantle from the skin of Sabor, which
had lain all this time in the cabin. But he found the hide had dried as stiff
as a board, and as he knew naught of tanning, he was forced to abandon his
cherished plan.
Then he determined to
filch what few garments he could from one of the black men of Mbonga's village,
for Tarzan of the Apes had decided to mark his evolution from the lower orders
in every possible manner, and nothing seemed to him a more distinguishing badge
of manhood than ornaments and clothing.
To this end, therefore,
he collected the various arm and leg ornaments he had taken from the black
warriors who had succumbed to his swift and silent noose, and donned them all
after the way he had seen them worn.
About his neck hung the
golden chain from which depended the diamond encrusted locket of his mother,
the Lady Alice. At his back was a quiver of arrows slung from a leathern
shoulder belt, another piece of loot from some vanquished black.
About his waist was a
belt of tiny strips of rawhide fashioned by himself as a support for the
home-made scabbard in which hung his father's hunting knife. The long bow which
had been Kulonga's hung over his left shoulder.
The young Lord
Greystoke was indeed a strange and war-like figure, his mass of black hair
falling to his shoulders behind and cut with his hunting knife to a rude bang
upon his forehead, that it might not fall before his eyes.
His straight and
perfect figure, muscled as the best of the ancient Roman gladiators must have
been muscled, and yet with the soft and sinuous curves of a Greek god, told at
a glance the wondrous combination of enormous strength with suppleness and
speed.
A personification, was
Tarzan of the Apes, of the primitive man, the hunter, the warrior.
With the noble poise of
his handsome head upon those broad shoulders, and the fire of life and
intelligence in those fine, clear eyes, he might readily have typified some
demigod of a wild and warlike bygone people of his ancient forest.
But of these things
Tarzan did not think. He was worried because he had not clothing to indicate to
all the jungle folks that he was a man and not an ape, and grave doubt often
entered his mind as to whether he might not yet become an ape.
Was not hair commencing
to grow upon his face? All the apes had hair upon theirs but the black men were
entirely hairless, with very few exceptions.
True, he had seen
pictures in his books of men with great masses of hair upon lip and cheek and
chin, but, nevertheless, Tarzan was afraid. Almost daily he whetted his keen
knife and scraped and whittled at his young beard to eradicate this degrading
emblem of apehood.
And so he learned to
shave--rudely and painfully, it is true--but, nevertheless, effectively.
When he felt quite
strong again, after his bloody battle with Terkoz, Tarzan set off one morning
towards Mbonga's village. He was moving carelessly along a winding jungle
trail, instead of making his progress through the trees, when suddenly he came
face to face with a black warrior.
The look of surprise on
the savage face was almost comical, and before Tarzan could unsling his bow the
fellow had turned and fled down the path crying out in alarm as though to
others before him.
Tarzan took to the
trees in pursuit, and in a few moments came in view of the men desperately
striving to escape.
There were three of
them, and they were racing madly in single file through the dense undergrowth.
Tarzan easily distanced
them, nor did they see his silent passage above their heads, nor note the
crouching figure squatted upon a low branch ahead of them beneath which the
trail led them.
Tarzan let the first
two pass beneath him, but as the third came swiftly on, the quiet noose dropped
about the black throat. A quick jerk drew it taut.
There was an agonized
scream from the victim, and his fellows turned to see his struggling body rise
as by magic slowly into the dense foliage of the trees above.
With frightened shrieks
they wheeled once more and plunged on in their efforts to escape.
Tarzan dispatched his
prisoner quickly and silently; removed the weapons and ornaments, and--oh, the
greatest joy of all--a handsome deerskin breechcloth, which he quickly
transferred to his own person.
Now indeed was he
dressed as a man should be. None there was who could now doubt his high origin.
How he should have liked to have returned to the tribe to parade before their
envious gaze this wondrous finery.
Taking the body across
his shoulder, he moved more slowly through the trees toward the little palisaded
village, for he again needed arrows.
As he approached quite
close to the enclosure he saw an excited group surrounding the two fugitives,
who, trembling with fright and exhaustion, were scarce able to recount the
uncanny details of their adventure.
Mirando, they said, who
had been ahead of them a short distance, had suddenly come screaming toward
them, crying that a terrible white and naked warrior was pursuing him. The
three of them had hurried toward the village as rapidly as their legs would carry
them.
Again Mirando's shrill
cry of mortal terror had caused them to look back, and there they had seen the
most horrible sight--their companion's body flying upwards into the trees, his
arms and legs beating the air and his tongue protruding from his open mouth. No
other sound did he utter nor was there any creature in sight about him.
The villagers were
worked up into a state of fear bordering on panic, but wise old Mbonga affected
to feel considerable skepticism regarding the tale, and attributed the whole
fabrication to their fright in the face of some real danger.
“You tell us this great
story,” he said, “because you do not dare to speak the truth. You do not dare
admit that when the lion sprang upon Mirando you ran away and left him. You are
cowards.”
Scarcely had Mbonga
ceased speaking when a great crashing of branches in the trees above them
caused the blacks to look up in renewed terror. The sight that met their eyes
made even wise old Mbonga shudder, for there, turning and twisting in the air,
came the dead body of Mirando, to sprawl with a sickening reverberation upon
the ground at their feet.
With one accord the
blacks took to their heels; nor did they stop until the last of them was lost
in the dense shadows of the surrounding jungle.
Again Tarzan came down
into the village and renewed his supply of arrows and ate of the offering of
food which the blacks had made to appease his wrath.
Before he left he
carried the body of Mirando to the gate of the village, and propped it up
against the palisade in such a way that the dead face seemed to be peering
around the edge of the gatepost down the path which led to the jungle.
Then Tarzan returned,
hunting, always hunting, to the cabin by the beach.
It took a dozen
attempts on the part of the thoroughly frightened blacks to reenter their
village, past the horrible, grinning face of their dead fellow, and when they
found the food and arrows gone they knew, what they had only too well feared,
that Mirando had seen the evil spirit of the jungle.
That now seemed to them
the logical explanation. Only those who saw this terrible god of the jungle
died; for was it not true that none left alive in the village had ever seen
him? Therefore, those who had died at his hands must have seen him and paid the
penalty with their lives.
As long as they
supplied him with arrows and food he would not harm them unless they looked
upon him, so it was ordered by Mbonga that in addition to the food offering
there should also be laid out an offering of arrows for this Munan-go-Keewati,
and this was done from then on.
If you ever chance to
pass that far off African village you will still see before a tiny thatched
hut, built just without the village, a little iron pot in which is a quantity
of food, and beside it a quiver of well-daubed arrows.
When Tarzan came in
sight of the beach where stood his cabin, a strange and unusual spectacle met
his vision.
On the placid waters of
the landlocked harbor floated a great ship, and on the beach a small boat was
drawn up.
But, most wonderful of
all, a number of white men like himself were moving about between the beach and
his cabin.
Tarzan saw that in many
ways they were like the men of his picture books. He crept closer through the
trees until he was quite close above them.
There were ten men,
swarthy, sun-tanned, villainous looking fellows. Now they had congregated by
the boat and were talking in loud, angry tones, with much gesticulating and
shaking of fists.
Presently one of them,
a little, mean-faced, black-bearded fellow with a countenance which reminded
Tarzan of Pamba, the rat, laid his hand upon the shoulder of a giant who stood
next him, and with whom all the others had been arguing and quarreling.
The little man pointed
inland, so that the giant was forced to turn away from the others to look in
the direction indicated. As he turned, the little, mean-faced man drew a
revolver from his belt and shot the giant in the back.
The big fellow threw
his hands above his head, his knees bent beneath him, and without a sound he
tumbled forward upon the beach, dead.
The report of the
weapon, the first that Tarzan had ever heard, filled him with wonderment, but
even this unaccustomed sound could not startle his healthy nerves into even a
semblance of panic.
The conduct of the
white strangers it was that caused him the greatest perturbation. He puckered
his brows into a frown of deep thought. It was well, thought he, that he had
not given way to his first impulse to rush forward and greet these white men as
brothers.
They were evidently no
different from the black men--no more civilized than the apes--no less cruel
than Sabor.
For a moment the others
stood looking at the little, mean-faced man and the giant lying dead upon the
beach.
Then one of them laughed
and slapped the little man upon the back. There was much more talk and
gesticulating, but less quarreling.
Presently they launched
the boat and all jumped into it and rowed away toward the great ship, where
Tarzan could see other figures moving about upon the deck.
When they had clambered
aboard, Tarzan dropped to earth behind a great tree and crept to his cabin,
keeping it always between himself and the ship.
Slipping in at the door
he found that everything had been ransacked. His books and pencils strewed the
floor. His weapons and shields and other little store of treasures were
littered about.
As he saw what had been
done a great wave of anger surged through him, and the new made scar upon his
forehead stood suddenly out, a bar of inflamed crimson against his tawny hide.
Quickly he ran to the
cupboard and searched in the far recess of the lower shelf. Ah! He breathed a
sigh of relief as he drew out the little tin box, and, opening it, found his
greatest treasures undisturbed.
The photograph of the
smiling, strong-faced young man, and the little black puzzle book were safe.
What was that?
His quick ear had
caught a faint but unfamiliar sound.
Running to the window
Tarzan looked toward the harbor, and there he saw that a boat was being lowered
from the great ship beside the one already in the water. Soon he saw many
people clambering over the sides of the larger vessel and dropping into the
boats. They were coming back in full force.
For a moment longer
Tarzan watched while a number of boxes and bundles were lowered into the
waiting boats, then, as they shoved off from the ship's side, the ape-man
snatched up a piece of paper, and with a pencil printed on it for a few moments
until it bore several lines of strong, well-made, almost letter-perfect
characters.
This notice he stuck
upon the door with a small sharp splinter of wood. Then gathering up his
precious tin box, his arrows, and as many bows and spears as he could carry, he
hastened through the door and disappeared into the forest.
When the two boats were
beached upon the silvery sand it was a strange assortment of humanity that
clambered ashore.
Some twenty souls in
all there were, fifteen of them rough and villainous appearing seamen.
The others of the party
were of different stamp.
One was an elderly man,
with white hair and large rimmed spectacles. His slightly stooped shoulders
were draped in an ill-fitting, though immaculate, frock coat, and a shiny silk
hat added to the incongruity of his garb in an African jungle.
The second member of
the party to land was a tall young man in white ducks, while directly behind
came another elderly man with a very high forehead and a fussy, excitable
manner.
After these came a huge
Negress clothed like Solomon as to colors. Her great eyes rolled in evident
terror, first toward the jungle and then toward the cursing band of sailors who
were removing the bales and boxes from the boats.
The last member of the
party to disembark was a girl of about nineteen, and it was the young man who
stood at the boat's prow to lift her high and dry upon land. She gave him a
brave and pretty smile of thanks, but no words passed between them.
In silence the party
advanced toward the cabin. It was evident that whatever their intentions, all
had been decided upon before they left the ship; and so they came to the door,
the sailors carrying the boxes and bales, followed by the five who were of so
different a class. The men put down their burdens, and then one caught sight of
the notice which Tarzan had posted.
“Ho, mates!” he cried. “What's
here? This sign was not posted an hour ago or I'll eat the cook.”
The others gathered
about, craning their necks over the shoulders of those before them, but as few
of them could read at all, and then only after the most laborious fashion, one
finally turned to the little old man of the top hat and frock coat.
“Hi, perfesser,” he
called, “step for'rd and read the bloomin' notis.”
Thus addressed, the old
man came slowly to where the sailors stood, followed by the other members of
his party. Adjusting his spectacles he looked for a moment at the placard and
then, turning away, strolled off muttering to himself: “Most remarkable--most
remarkable!”
“Hi, old fossil,” cried
the man who had first called on him for assistance, “did je think we wanted of
you to read the bloomin' notis to yourself? Come back here and read it out
loud, you old barnacle.”
The old man stopped
and, turning back, said: “Oh, yes, my dear sir, a thousand pardons. It was
quite thoughtless of me, yes--very thoughtless. Most remarkable--most
remarkable!”
Again he faced the
notice and read it through, and doubtless would have turned off again to
ruminate upon it had not the sailor grasped him roughly by the collar and
howled into his ear.
“Read it out loud, you
blithering old idiot.”
“Ah, yes indeed, yes
indeed,” replied the professor softly, and adjusting his spectacles once more
he read aloud:
This is the house of
Tarzan, the killer of beasts and many black men. Do not harm the things which
are Tarzan's. Tarzan watches. Tarzan of the Apes.
“Who the devil is
Tarzan?” cried the sailor who had before spoken.
“He evidently speaks
English,” said the young man.
“But what does ‘Tarzan
of the Apes’ mean?” cried the girl.
“I do not know, Miss
Porter,” replied the young man, “unless we have discovered a runaway simian
from the London Zoo who has brought back a European education to his jungle
home. What do you make of it, Professor Porter?” he added, turning to the old
man.
Professor Archimedes Q.
Porter adjusted his spectacles.
“Ah, yes, indeed; yes
indeed--most remarkable, most remarkable!” said the professor; “but I can add
nothing further to what I have already remarked in elucidation of this truly
momentous occurrence,” and the professor turned slowly in the direction of the
jungle.
“But, papa,” cried the
girl, “you haven't said anything about it yet.”
“Tut, tut, child; tut,
tut,” responded Professor Porter, in a kindly and indulgent tone, “do not
trouble your pretty head with such weighty and abstruse problems,” and again he
wandered slowly off in still another direction, his eyes bent upon the ground
at his feet, his hands clasped behind him beneath the flowing tails of his
coat.
“I reckon the daffy old
bounder don't know no more'n we do about it,” growled the rat-faced sailor.
“Keep a civil tongue in
your head,” cried the young man, his face paling in anger, at the insulting
tone of the sailor. “You've murdered our officers and robbed us. We are
absolutely in your power, but you'll treat Professor Porter and Miss Porter
with respect or I'll break that vile neck of yours with my bare hands--guns or
no guns,” and the young fellow stepped so close to the rat-faced sailor that
the latter, though he bore two revolvers and a villainous looking knife in his
belt, slunk back abashed.
“You damned coward,”
cried the young man. “You'd never dare shoot a man until his back was turned.
You don't dare shoot me even then,” and he deliberately turned his back full
upon the sailor and walked nonchalantly away as if to put him to the test.
The sailor's hand crept
slyly to the butt of one of his revolvers; his wicked eyes glared vengefully at
the retreating form of the young Englishman. The gaze of his fellows was upon
him, but still he hesitated. At heart he was even a greater coward than Mr.
William Cecil Clayton had imagined.
Two keen eyes had
watched every move of the party from the foliage of a nearby tree. Tarzan had
seen the surprise caused by his notice, and while he could understand nothing
of the spoken language of these strange people their gestures and facial
expressions told him much.
The act of the little
rat-faced sailor in killing one of his comrades had aroused a strong dislike in
Tarzan, and now that he saw him quarreling with the fine-looking young man his
animosity was still further stirred.
Tarzan had never seen
the effects of a firearm before, though his books had taught him something of
them, but when he saw the rat-faced one fingering the butt of his revolver he
thought of the scene he had witnessed so short a time before, and naturally
expected to see the young man murdered as had been the huge sailor earlier in
the day.
So Tarzan fitted a
poisoned arrow to his bow and drew a bead upon the rat-faced sailor, but the
foliage was so thick that he soon saw the arrow would be deflected by the
leaves or some small branch, and instead he launched a heavy spear from his
lofty perch.
Clayton had taken but a
dozen steps. The rat-faced sailor had half drawn his revolver; the other
sailors stood watching the scene intently.
Professor Porter had
already disappeared into the jungle, whither he was being followed by the fussy
Samuel T. Philander, his secretary and assistant.
Esmeralda, the Negress,
was busy sorting her mistress' baggage from the pile of bales and boxes beside
the cabin, and Miss Porter had turned away to follow Clayton, when something
caused her to turn again toward the sailor.
And then three things
happened almost simultaneously. The sailor jerked out his weapon and leveled it
at Clayton's back, Miss Porter screamed a warning, and a long, metal-shod spear
shot like a bolt from above and passed entirely through the right shoulder of
the rat-faced man.
The revolver exploded
harmlessly in the air, and the seaman crumpled up with a scream of pain and
terror.
Clayton turned and
rushed back toward the scene. The sailors stood in a frightened group, with
drawn weapons, peering into the jungle. The wounded man writhed and shrieked
upon the ground.
Clayton, unseen by any,
picked up the fallen revolver and slipped it inside his shirt, then he joined
the sailors in gazing, mystified, into the jungle.
“Who could it have
been?” whispered Jane Porter, and the young man turned to see her standing,
wide-eyed and wondering, close beside him.
“I dare say Tarzan of
the Apes is watching us all right,” he answered, in a dubious tone. “I wonder,
now, who that spear was intended for. If for Snipes, then our ape friend is a
friend indeed.
“By jove, where are
your father and Mr. Philander? There's someone or something in that jungle, and
it's armed, whatever it is. Ho! Professor! Mr. Philander!” young Clayton
shouted. There was no response.
“What's to be done,
Miss Porter?” continued the young man, his face clouded by a frown of worry and
indecision.
“I can't leave you here
alone with these cutthroats, and you certainly can't venture into the jungle
with me; yet someone must go in search of your father. He is more than apt to
wandering off aimlessly, regardless of danger or direction, and Mr. Philander
is only a trifle less impractical than he. You will pardon my bluntness, but
our lives are all in jeopardy here, and when we get your father back something
must be done to impress upon him the dangers to which he exposes you as well as
himself by his absent-mindedness.”
“I quite agree with
you,” replied the girl, “and I am not offended at all. Dear old papa would
sacrifice his life for me without an instant's hesitation, provided one could
keep his mind on so frivolous a matter for an entire instant. There is only one
way to keep him in safety, and that is to chain him to a tree. The poor dear is
so impractical.”
“I have it!” suddenly
exclaimed Clayton. “You can use a revolver, can't you?”
“Yes. Why?”
“I have one. With it
you and Esmeralda will be comparatively safe in this cabin while I am searching
for your father and Mr. Philander. Come, call the woman and I will hurry on.
They can't have gone far.”
Jane did as he
suggested and when he saw the door close safely behind them Clayton turned
toward the jungle.
Some of the sailors
were drawing the spear from their wounded comrade and, as Clayton approached,
he asked if he could borrow a revolver from one of them while he searched the
jungle for the professor.
The rat-faced one,
finding he was not dead, had regained his composure, and with a volley of oaths
directed at Clayton refused in the name of his fellows to allow the young man
any firearms.
This man, Snipes, had
assumed the role of chief since he had killed their former leader, and so
little time had elapsed that none of his companions had as yet questioned his
authority.
Clayton's only response
was a shrug of the shoulders, but as he left them he picked up the spear which
had transfixed Snipes, and thus primitively armed, the son of the then Lord
Greystoke strode into the dense jungle.
Every few moments he
called aloud the names of the wanderers. The watchers in the cabin by the beach
heard the sound of his voice growing ever fainter and fainter, until at last it
was swallowed up by the myriad noises of the primeval wood.
When Professor
Archimedes Q. Porter and his assistant, Samuel T. Philander, after much
insistence on the part of the latter, had finally turned their steps toward
camp, they were as completely lost in the wild and tangled labyrinth of the
matted jungle as two human beings well could be, though they did not know it.
It was by the merest
caprice of fortune that they headed toward the west coast of Africa, instead of
toward Zanzibar on the opposite side of the dark continent.
When in a short time
they reached the beach, only to find no camp in sight, Philander was positive
that they were north of their proper destination, while, as a matter of fact
they were about two hundred yards south of it.
It never occurred to
either of these impractical theorists to call aloud on the chance of attracting
their friends' attention. Instead, with all the assurance that deductive
reasoning from a wrong premise induces in one, Mr. Samuel T. Philander grasped
Professor Archimedes Q. Porter firmly by the arm and hurried the weakly
protesting old gentleman off in the direction of Cape Town, fifteen hundred
miles to the south.
When Jane and Esmeralda
found themselves safely behind the cabin door the Negress's first thought was
to barricade the portal from the inside. With this idea in mind she turned to
search for some means of putting it into execution; but her first view of the
interior of the cabin brought a shriek of terror to her lips, and like a
frightened child the huge woman ran to bury her face on her mistress' shoulder.
Jane, turning at the
cry, saw the cause of it lying prone upon the floor before them--the whitened
skeleton of a man. A further glance revealed a second skeleton upon the bed.
“What horrible place
are we in?” murmured the awe-struck girl. But there was no panic in her fright.
At last, disengaging
herself from the frantic clutch of the still shrieking Esmeralda, Jane crossed
the room to look into the little cradle, knowing what she should see there even
before the tiny skeleton disclosed itself in all its pitiful and pathetic
frailty.
What an awful tragedy
these poor mute bones proclaimed! The girl shuddered at thought of the
eventualities which might lie before herself and her friends in this ill-fated
cabin, the haunt of mysterious, perhaps hostile, beings.
Quickly, with an
impatient stamp of her little foot, she endeavored to shake off the gloomy
forebodings, and turning to Esmeralda bade her cease her wailing.
“Stop, Esmeralda, stop
it this minute!” she cried. “You are only making it worse.”
She ended lamely, a
little quiver in her own voice as she thought of the three men, upon whom she
depended for protection, wandering in the depth of that awful forest.
Soon the girl found
that the door was equipped with a heavy wooden bar upon the inside, and after
several efforts the combined strength of the two enabled them to slip it into
place, the first time in twenty years.
Then they sat down upon
a bench with their arms about one another, and waited.
After Clayton had
plunged into the jungle, the sailors --mutineers of the Arrow--fell into a
discussion of their next step; but on one point all were agreed--that they
should hasten to put off to the anchored Arrow, where they could at least be
safe from the spears of their unseen foe. And so, while Jane Porter and
Esmeralda were barricading themselves within the cabin, the cowardly crew of
cutthroats were pulling rapidly for their ship in the two boats that had
brought them ashore.
So much had Tarzan seen
that day that his head was in a whirl of wonder. But the most wonderful sight
of all, to him, was the face of the beautiful white girl.
Here at last was one of
his own kind; of that he was positive. And the young man and the two old men;
they, too, were much as he had pictured his own people to be.
But doubtless they were
as ferocious and cruel as other men he had seen. The fact that they alone of
all the party were unarmed might account for the fact that they had killed no
one. They might be very different if provided with weapons.
Tarzan had seen the
young man pick up the fallen revolver of the wounded Snipes and hide it away in
his breast; and he had also seen him slip it cautiously to the girl as she
entered the cabin door.
He did not understand
anything of the motives behind all that he had seen; but, somehow, intuitively
he liked the young man and the two old men, and for the girl he had a strange
longing which he scarcely understood. As for the big black woman, she was evidently
connected in some way to the girl, and so he liked her, also.
For the sailors, and
especially Snipes, he had developed a great hatred. He knew by their
threatening gestures and by the expression upon their evil faces that they were
enemies of the others of the party, and so he decided to watch closely.
Tarzan wondered why the
men had gone into the jungle, nor did it ever occur to him that one could
become lost in that maze of undergrowth which to him was as simple as is the
main street of your own home town to you.
When he saw the sailors
row away toward the ship, and knew that the girl and her companion were safe in
his cabin, Tarzan decided to follow the young man into the jungle and learn
what his errand might be. He swung off rapidly in the direction taken by
Clayton, and in a short time heard faintly in the distance the now only
occasional calls of the Englishman to his friends.
Presently Tarzan came
up with the white man, who, almost fagged, was leaning against a tree wiping
the perspiration from his forehead. The ape-man, hiding safe behind a screen of
foliage, sat watching this new specimen of his own race intently.
At intervals Clayton
called aloud and finally it came to Tarzan that he was searching for the old
man.
Tarzan was on the point
of going off to look for them himself, when he caught the yellow glint of a
sleek hide moving cautiously through the jungle toward Clayton.
It was Sheeta, the
leopard. Now, Tarzan heard the soft bending of grasses and wondered why the
young white man was not warned. Could it be he had failed to note the loud
warning? Never before had Tarzan known Sheeta to be so clumsy.
No, the white man did
not hear. Sheeta was crouching for the spring, and then, shrill and horrible,
there rose from the stillness of the jungle the awful cry of the challenging
ape, and Sheeta turned, crashing into the underbrush.
Clayton came to his
feet with a start. His blood ran cold. Never in all his life had so fearful a
sound smote upon his ears. He was no coward; but if ever man felt the icy
fingers of fear upon his heart, William Cecil Clayton, eldest son of Lord
Greystoke of England, did that day in the fastness of the African jungle.
The noise of some great
body crashing through the underbrush so close beside him, and the sound of that
bloodcurdling shriek from above, tested Clayton's courage to the limit; but he
could not know that it was to that very voice he owed his life, nor that the
creature who hurled it forth was his own cousin--the real Lord Greystoke.
The afternoon was
drawing to a close, and Clayton, disheartened and discouraged, was in a
terrible quandary as to the proper course to pursue; whether to keep on in
search of Professor Porter, at the almost certain risk of his own death in the
jungle by night, or to return to the cabin where he might at least serve to
protect Jane from the perils which confronted her on all sides.
He did not wish to
return to camp without her father; still more, he shrank from the thought of
leaving her alone and unprotected in the hands of the mutineers of the Arrow,
or to the hundred unknown dangers of the jungle.
Possibly, too, he
thought, the professor and Philander might have returned to camp. Yes, that was
more than likely. At least he would return and see, before he continued what
seemed to be a most fruitless quest. And so he started, stumbling back through
the thick and matted underbrush in the direction that he thought the cabin lay.
To Tarzan's surprise
the young man was heading further into the jungle in the general direction of
Mbonga's village, and the shrewd young ape-man was convinced that he was lost.
To Tarzan this was
scarcely incomprehensible; his judgment told him that no man would venture
toward the village of the cruel blacks armed only with a spear which, from the
awkward way in which he carried it, was evidently an unaccustomed weapon to
this white man. Nor was he following the trail of the old men. That, they had
crossed and left long since, though it had been fresh and plain before Tarzan's
eyes.
Tarzan was perplexed.
The fierce jungle would make easy prey of this unprotected stranger in a very
short time if he were not guided quickly to the beach.
Yes, there was Numa,
the lion, even now, stalking the white man a dozen paces to the right.
Clayton heard the great
body paralleling his course, and now there rose upon the evening air the
beast's thunderous roar. The man stopped with upraised spear and faced the
brush from which issued the awful sound. The shadows were deepening, darkness
was settling in.
God! To die here alone,
beneath the fangs of wild beasts; to be torn and rended; to feel the hot breath
of the brute on his face as the great paw crushed down up his breast!
For a moment all was
still. Clayton stood rigid, with raised spear. Presently a faint rustling of
the bush apprised him of the stealthy creeping of the thing behind. It was
gathering for the spring. At last he saw it, not twenty feet away--the long,
lithe, muscular body and tawny head of a huge black-maned lion.
The beast was upon its
belly, moving forward very slowly. As its eyes met Clayton's it stopped, and
deliberately, cautiously gathered its hind quarters behind it.
In agony the man
watched, fearful to launch his spear, powerless to fly.
He heard a noise in the
tree above him. Some new danger, he thought, but he dared not take his eyes
from the yellow green orbs before him. There was a sharp twang as of a broken
banjo-string, and at the same instant an arrow appeared in the yellow hide of
the crouching lion.
With a roar of pain and
anger the beast sprang; but, somehow, Clayton stumbled to one side, and as he
turned again to face the infuriated king of beasts, he was appalled at the
sight which confronted him. Almost simultaneously with the lion's turning to
renew the attack a half-naked giant dropped from the tree above squarely on the
brute's back.
With lightning speed an
arm that was banded layers of iron muscle encircled the huge neck, and the
great beast was raised from behind, roaring and pawing the air--raised as
easily as Clayton would have lifted a pet dog.
The scene he witnessed
there in the twilight depths of the African jungle was burned forever into the
Englishman's brain.
The man before him was
the embodiment of physical perfection and giant strength; yet it was not upon
these he depended in his battle with the great cat, for mighty as were his
muscles, they were as nothing by comparison with Numa's. To his agility, to his
brain and to his long keen knife he owed his supremacy.
His right arm encircled
the lion's neck, while the left hand plunged the knife time and again into the
unprotected side behind the left shoulder. The infuriated beast, pulled up and
backwards until he stood upon his hind legs, struggled impotently in this
unnatural position.
Had the battle been of
a few seconds' longer duration the outcome might have been different, but it
was all accomplished so quickly that the lion had scarce time to recover from
the confusion of its surprise ere it sank lifeless to the ground.
Then the strange figure
which had vanquished it stood erect upon the carcass, and throwing back the
wild and handsome head, gave out the fearsome cry which a few moments earlier
had so startled Clayton.
Before him he saw the
figure of a young man, naked except for a loin cloth and a few barbaric
ornaments about arms and legs; on the breast a priceless diamond locket
gleaming against a smooth brown skin.
The hunting knife had
been returned to its homely sheath, and the man was gathering up his bow and quiver
from where he had tossed them when he leaped to attack the lion.
Clayton spoke to the
stranger in English, thanking him for his brave rescue and complimenting him on
the wondrous strength and dexterity he had displayed, but the only answer was a
steady stare and a faint shrug of the mighty shoulders, which might betoken
either disparagement of the service rendered, or ignorance of Clayton's
language.
When the bow and quiver
had been slung to his back the wild man, for such Clayton now thought him, once
more drew his knife and deftly carved a dozen large strips of meat from the
lion's carcass. Then, squatting upon his haunches, he proceeded to eat, first
motioning Clayton to join him.
The strong white teeth
sank into the raw and dripping flesh in apparent relish of the meal, but
Clayton could not bring himself to share the uncooked meat with his strange
host; instead he watched him, and presently there dawned upon him the
conviction that this was Tarzan of the Apes, whose notice he had seen posted upon
the cabin door that morning.
If so he must speak
English.
Again Clayton attempted
speech with the ape-man; but the replies, now vocal, were in a strange tongue,
which resembled the chattering of monkeys mingled with the growling of some
wild beast.
No, this could not be
Tarzan of the Apes, for it was very evident that he was an utter stranger to
English.
When Tarzan had
completed his repast he rose and, pointing a very different direction from that
which Clayton had been pursuing, started off through the jungle toward the
point he had indicated.
Clayton, bewildered and
confused, hesitated to follow him, for he thought he was but being led more
deeply into the mazes of the forest; but the ape-man, seeing him disinclined to
follow, returned, and, grasping him by the coat, dragged him along until he was
convinced that Clayton understood what was required of him. Then he left him to
follow voluntarily.
The Englishman, finally
concluding that he was a prisoner, saw no alternative open but to accompany his
captor, and thus they traveled slowly through the jungle while the sable mantle
of the impenetrable forest night fell about them, and the stealthy footfalls of
padded paws mingled with the breaking of twigs and the wild calls of the savage
life that Clayton felt closing in upon him.
Suddenly Clayton heard
the faint report of a firearm--a single shot, and then silence.
In the cabin by the
beach two thoroughly terrified women clung to each other as they crouched upon
the low bench in the gathering darkness.
The Negress sobbed
hysterically, bemoaning the evil day that had witnessed her departure from her
dear Maryland, while the white girl, dry eyed and outwardly calm, was torn by
inward fears and forebodings. She feared not more for herself than for the
three men whom she knew to be wandering in the abysmal depths of the savage
jungle, from which she now heard issuing the almost incessant shrieks and
roars, barkings and growlings of its terrifying and fearsome denizens as they
sought their prey.
And now there came the
sound of a heavy body brushing against the side of the cabin. She could hear
the great padded paws upon the ground outside. For an instant, all was silence;
even the bedlam of the forest died to a faint murmur. Then she distinctly heard
the beast outside sniffing at the door, not two feet from where she crouched.
Instinctively the girl shuddered, and shrank closer to the black woman.
“Hush!” she whispered. “Hush,
Esmeralda,” for the woman's sobs and groans seemed to have attracted the thing
that stalked there just beyond the thin wall.
A gentle scratching
sound was heard on the door. The brute tried to force an entrance; but
presently this ceased, and again she heard the great pads creeping stealthily
around the cabin. Again they stopped--beneath the window on which the terrified
eyes of the girl now glued themselves.
“God!” she murmured,
for now, silhouetted against the moonlit sky beyond, she saw framed in the tiny
square of the latticed window the head of a huge lioness. The gleaming eyes
were fixed upon her in intent ferocity.
“Look, Esmeralda!” she
whispered. “For God's sake, what shall we do? Look! Quick! The window!”
Esmeralda, cowering
still closer to her mistress, took one frightened glance toward the little
square of moonlight, just as the lioness emitted a low, savage snarl.
The sight that met the
poor woman's eyes was too much for the already overstrung nerves.
“Oh, Gaberelle!” she
shrieked, and slid to the floor an inert and senseless mass.
For what seemed an
eternity the great brute stood with its forepaws upon the sill, glaring into
the little room. Presently it tried the strength of the lattice with its great
talons.
The girl had almost
ceased to breathe, when, to her relief, the head disappeared and she heard the
brute's footsteps leaving the window. But now they came to the door again, and
once more the scratching commenced; this time with increasing force until the
great beast was tearing at the massive panels in a perfect frenzy of eagerness
to seize its defenseless victims.
Could Jane have known
the immense strength of that door, built piece by piece, she would have felt
less fear of the lioness reaching her by this avenue.
Little did John Clayton
imagine when he fashioned that crude but mighty portal that one day, twenty
years later, it would shield a fair American girl, then unborn, from the teeth
and talons of a man-eater.
For fully twenty
minutes the brute alternately sniffed and tore at the door, occasionally giving
voice to a wild, savage cry of baffled rage. At length, however, she gave up
the attempt, and Jane heard her returning toward the window, beneath which she
paused for an instant, and then launched her great weight against the timeworn
lattice.
The girl heard the
wooden rods groan beneath the impact; but they held, and the huge body dropped
back to the ground below.
Again and again the
lioness repeated these tactics, until finally the horrified prisoner within saw
a portion of the lattice give way, and in an instant one great paw and the head
of the animal were thrust within the room.
Slowly the powerful
neck and shoulders spread the bars apart, and the lithe body protruded farther
and farther into the room.
As in a trance, the
girl rose, her hand upon her breast, wide eyes staring horror-stricken into the
snarling face of the beast scarce ten feet from her. At her feet lay the
prostrate form of the Negress. If she could but arouse her, their combined
efforts might possibly avail to beat back the fierce and bloodthirsty intruder.
Jane stooped to grasp
the black woman by the shoulder. Roughly she shook her.
“Esmeralda! Esmeralda!”
she cried. “Help me, or we are lost.”
Esmeralda opened her
eyes. The first object they encountered was the dripping fangs of the hungry
lioness.
With a horrified scream
the poor woman rose to her hands and knees, and in this position scurried
across the room, shrieking: “O Gaberelle! O Gaberelle!” at the top of her
lungs.
Esmeralda weighed some
two hundred and eighty pounds, and her extreme haste, added to her extreme
corpulency, produced a most amazing result when Esmeralda elected to travel on
all fours.
For a moment the
lioness remained quiet with intense gaze directed upon the flitting Esmeralda,
whose goal appeared to be the cupboard, into which she attempted to propel her
huge bulk; but as the shelves were but nine or ten inches apart, she only
succeeded in getting her head in; whereupon, with a final screech, which paled
the jungle noises into insignificance, she fainted once again.
With the subsidence of
Esmeralda the lioness renewed her efforts to wriggle her huge bulk through the
weakening lattice.
The girl, standing pale
and rigid against the farther wall, sought with ever-increasing terror for some
loophole of escape. Suddenly her hand, tight-pressed against her bosom, felt
the hard outline of the revolver that Clayton had left with her earlier in the
day.
Quickly she snatched it
from its hiding-place, and, leveling it full at the lioness's face, pulled the
trigger.
There was a flash of
flame, the roar of the discharge, and an answering roar of pain and anger from
the beast.
Jane Porter saw the
great form disappear from the window, and then she, too, fainted, the revolver
falling at her side.
But Sabor was not
killed. The bullet had but inflicted a painful wound in one of the great
shoulders. It was the surprise at the blinding flash and the deafening roar
that had caused her hasty but temporary retreat.
In another instant she
was back at the lattice, and with renewed fury was clawing at the aperture, but
with lessened effect, since the wounded member was almost useless.
She saw her prey--the
two women--lying senseless upon the floor. There was no longer any resistance
to be overcome. Her meat lay before her, and Sabor had only to worm her way
through the lattice to claim it.
Slowly she forced her
great bulk, inch by inch, through the opening. Now her head was through, now
one great forearm and shoulder.
Carefully she drew up
the wounded member to insinuate it gently beyond the tight pressing bars.
A moment more and both
shoulders through, the long, sinuous body and the narrow hips would glide
quickly after.
It was on this sight
that Jane Porter again opened her eyes.
When Clayton heard the
report of the firearm he fell into an agony of fear and apprehension. He knew
that one of the sailors might be the author of it; but the fact that he had
left the revolver with Jane, together with the overwrought condition of his
nerves, made him morbidly positive that she was threatened with some great
danger. Perhaps even now she was attempting to defend herself against some
savage man or beast.
What were the thoughts
of his strange captor or guide Clayton could only vaguely conjecture; but that
he had heard the shot, and was in some manner affected by it was quite evident,
for he quickened his pace so appreciably that Clayton, stumbling blindly in his
wake, was down a dozen times in as many minutes in a vain effort to keep pace
with him, and soon was left hopelessly behind.
Fearing that he would
again be irretrievably lost, he called aloud to the wild man ahead of him, and
in a moment had the satisfaction of seeing him drop lightly to his side from
the branches above.
For a moment Tarzan
looked at the young man closely, as though undecided as to just what was best
to do; then, stooping down before Clayton, he motioned him to grasp him about
the neck, and, with the white man upon his back, Tarzan took to the trees.
The next few minutes
the young Englishman never forgot. High into bending and swaying branches he
was borne with what seemed to him incredible swiftness, while Tarzan chafed at
the slowness of his progress.
From one lofty branch
the agile creature swung with Clayton through a dizzy arc to a neighboring
tree; then for a hundred yards maybe the sure feet threaded a maze of
interwoven limbs, balancing like a tightrope walker high above the black depths
of verdure beneath.
From the first
sensation of chilling fear Clayton passed to one of keen admiration and envy of
those giant muscles and that wondrous instinct or knowledge which guided this
forest god through the inky blackness of the night as easily and safely as
Clayton would have strolled a London street at high noon.
Occasionally they would
enter a spot where the foliage above was less dense, and the bright rays of the
moon lit up before Clayton's wondering eyes the strange path they were
traversing.
At such times the man
fairly caught his breath at sight of the horrid depths below them, for Tarzan
took the easiest way, which often led over a hundred feet above the earth.
And yet with all his
seeming speed, Tarzan was in reality feeling his way with comparative slowness,
searching constantly for limbs of adequate strength for the maintenance of this
double weight.
Presently they came to
the clearing before the beach. Tarzan's quick ears had heard the strange sounds
of Sabor's efforts to force her way through the lattice, and it seemed to
Clayton that they dropped a straight hundred feet to earth, so quickly did
Tarzan descend. Yet when they struck the ground it was with scarce a jar; and
as Clayton released his hold on the ape-man he saw him dart like a squirrel for
the opposite side of the cabin.
The Englishman sprang
quickly after him just in time to see the hind quarters of some huge animal
about to disappear through the window of the cabin.
As Jane opened her eyes
to a realization of the imminent peril which threatened her, her brave young heart
gave up at last its final vestige of hope. But then to her surprise she saw the
huge animal being slowly drawn back through the window, and in the moonlight
beyond she saw the heads and shoulders of two men.
As Clayton rounded the
corner of the cabin to behold the animal disappearing within, it was also to
see the ape-man seize the long tail in both hands, and, bracing himself with
his feet against the side of the cabin, throw all his mighty strength into the
effort to draw the beast out of the interior.
Clayton was quick to
lend a hand, but the ape-man jabbered to him in a commanding and peremptory
tone something which Clayton knew to be orders, though he could not understand
them.
At last, under their
combined efforts, the great body was slowly dragged farther and farther outside
the window, and then there came to Clayton's mind a dawning conception of the
rash bravery of his companion's act.
For a naked man to drag
a shrieking, clawing man-eater forth from a window by the tail to save a strange
white girl, was indeed the last word in heroism.
Insofar as Clayton was
concerned it was a very different matter, since the girl was not only of his
own kind and race, but was the one woman in all the world whom he loved.
Though he knew that the
lioness would make short work of both of them, he pulled with a will to keep it
from Jane Porter. And then he recalled the battle between this man and the
great, black-maned lion which he had witnessed a short time before, and he
commenced to feel more assurance.
Tarzan was still
issuing orders which Clayton could not understand.
He was trying to tell
the stupid white man to plunge his poisoned arrows into Sabor's back and sides,
and to reach the savage heart with the long, thin hunting knife that hung at Tarzan's
hip; but the man would not understand, and Tarzan did not dare release his hold
to do the things himself, for he knew that the puny white man never could hold
mighty Sabor alone, for an instant.
Slowly the lioness was
emerging from the window. At last her shoulders were out.
And then Clayton saw an
incredible thing. Tarzan, racking his brains for some means to cope
single-handed with the infuriated beast, had suddenly recalled his battle with
Terkoz; and as the great shoulders came clear of the window, so that the
lioness hung upon the sill only by her forepaws, Tarzan suddenly released his
hold upon the brute.
With the quickness of a
striking rattler he launched himself full upon Sabor's back, his strong young
arms seeking and gaining a full-Nelson upon the beast, as he had learned it
that other day during his bloody, wrestling victory over Terkoz.
With a roar the lioness
turned completely over upon her back, falling full upon her enemy; but the
black-haired giant only closed tighter his hold.
Pawing and tearing at
earth and air, Sabor rolled and threw herself this way and that in an effort to
dislodge this strange antagonist; but ever tighter and tighter drew the iron
bands that were forcing her head lower and lower upon her tawny breast.
Higher crept the steel
forearms of the ape-man about the back of Sabor's neck. Weaker and weaker
became the lioness's efforts.
At last Clayton saw the
immense muscles of Tarzan's shoulders and biceps leap into corded knots beneath
the silver moonlight. There was a long sustained and supreme effort on the
ape-man's part--and the vertebrae of Sabor's neck parted with a sharp snap.
In an instant Tarzan
was upon his feet, and for the second time that day Clayton heard the bull
ape's savage roar of victory. Then he heard Jane's agonized cry:
“Cecil--Mr. Clayton!
Oh, what is it? What is it?”
Running quickly to the
cabin door, Clayton called out that all was right, and shouted to her to open
the door. As quickly as she could she raised the great bar and fairly dragged
Clayton within.
“What was that awful
noise?” she whispered, shrinking close to him.
“It was the cry of the
kill from the throat of the man who has just saved your life, Miss Porter.
Wait, I will fetch him so you may thank him.”
The frightened girl
would not be left alone, so she accompanied Clayton to the side of the cabin
where lay the dead body of the lioness.
Tarzan of the Apes was
gone.
Clayton called several
times, but there was no reply, and so the two returned to the greater safety of
the interior.
“What a frightful
sound!” cried Jane, “I shudder at the mere thought of it. Do not tell me that a
human throat voiced that hideous and fearsome shriek.”
“But it did, Miss
Porter,” replied Clayton; “or at least if not a human throat that of a forest
god.”
And then he told her of
his experiences with this strange creature--of how twice the wild man had saved
his life--of the wondrous strength, and agility, and bravery--of the brown skin
and the handsome face.
“I cannot make it out
at all,” he concluded. “At first I thought he might be Tarzan of the Apes; but
he neither speaks nor understands English, so that theory is untenable.”
“Well, whatever he may
be,” cried the girl, “we owe him our lives, and may God bless him and keep him
in safety in his wild and savage jungle!”
“Amen,” said Clayton,
fervently.
“For the good Lord's
sake, ain't I dead?”
The two turned to see
Esmeralda sitting upright upon the floor, her great eyes rolling from side to
side as though she could not believe their testimony as to her whereabouts.
And now, for Jane
Porter, the reaction came, and she threw herself upon the bench, sobbing with
hysterical laughter.
Several miles south of
the cabin, upon a strip of sandy beach, stood two old men, arguing.
Before them stretched
the broad Atlantic. At their backs was the Dark Continent. Close around them
loomed the impenetrable blackness of the jungle.
Savage beasts roared
and growled; noises, hideous and weird, assailed their ears. They had wandered
for miles in search of their camp, but always in the wrong direction. They were
as hopelessly lost as though they suddenly had been transported to another
world.
At such a time, indeed,
every fiber of their combined intellects must have been concentrated upon the
vital question of the minute--the life-and-death question to them of retracing
their steps to camp.
Samuel T. Philander was
speaking.
“But, my dear
professor,” he was saying, “I still maintain that but for the victories of
Ferdinand and Isabella over the fifteenth-century Moors in Spain the world
would be today a thousand years in advance of where we now find ourselves. The
Moors were essentially a tolerant, broad-minded, liberal race of
agriculturists, artisans and merchants--the very type of people that has made
possible such civilization as we find today in America and Europe--while the
Spaniards--”
“Tut, tut, dear Mr.
Philander,” interrupted Professor Porter; “their religion positively precluded
the possibilities you suggest. Moslemism was, is, and always will be, a blight
on that scientific progress which has marked--”
“Bless me! Professor,”
interjected Mr. Philander, who had turned his gaze toward the jungle, “there
seems to be someone approaching.”
Professor Archimedes Q.
Porter turned in the direction indicated by the nearsighted Mr. Philander.
“Tut, tut, Mr.
Philander,” he chided. “How often must I urge you to seek that absolute
concentration of your mental faculties which alone may permit you to bring to
bear the highest powers of intellectuality upon the momentous problems which
naturally fall to the lot of great minds? And now I find you guilty of a most
flagrant breach of courtesy in interrupting my learned discourse to call
attention to a mere quadruped of the genus felis. As I was saying, Mr.--”
“Heavens, Professor, a
lion?” cried Mr. Philander, straining his weak eyes toward the dim figure
outlined against the dark tropical underbrush.
“Yes, yes, Mr.
Philander, if you insist upon employing slang in your discourse, a ‘lion.’ But
as I was saying--”
“Bless me, Professor,”
again interrupted Mr. Philander; “permit me to suggest that doubtless the Moors
who were conquered in the fifteenth century will continue in that most
regrettable condition for the time being at least, even though we postpone
discussion of that world calamity until we may attain the enchanting view of
yon felis carnivora which distance proverbially is credited with lending.”
In the meantime the
lion had approached with quiet dignity to within ten paces of the two men,
where he stood curiously watching them.
The moonlight flooded
the beach, and the strange group stood out in bold relief against the yellow
sand.
“Most reprehensible,
most reprehensible,” exclaimed Professor Porter, with a faint trace of
irritation in his voice. “Never, Mr. Philander, never before in my life have I
known one of these animals to be permitted to roam at large from its cage. I
shall most certainly report this outrageous breach of ethics to the directors
of the adjacent zoological garden.”
“Quite right,
Professor,” agreed Mr. Philander, “and the sooner it is done the better. Let us
start now.”
Seizing the professor
by the arm, Mr. Philander set off in the direction that would put the greatest
distance between themselves and the lion.
They had proceeded but
a short distance when a backward glance revealed to the horrified gaze of Mr.
Philander that the lion was following them. He tightened his grip upon the
protesting professor and increased his speed.
“As I was saying, Mr.
Philander,” repeated Professor Porter.
Mr. Philander took
another hasty glance rearward. The lion also had quickened his gait, and was
doggedly maintaining an unvarying distance behind them.
“He is following us!”
gasped Mr. Philander, breaking into a run.
“Tut, tut, Mr.
Philander,” remonstrated the professor, “this unseemly haste is most unbecoming
to men of letters. What will our friends think of us, who may chance to be upon
the street and witness our frivolous antics? Pray let us proceed with more
decorum.”
Mr. Philander stole
another observation astern.
The lion was bounding
along in easy leaps scarce five paces behind.
Mr. Philander dropped
the professor's arm, and broke into a mad orgy of speed that would have done
credit to any varsity track team.
“As I was saying, Mr.
Philander--” screamed Professor Porter, as, metaphorically speaking, he himself
“threw her into high.” He, too, had caught a fleeting backward glimpse of cruel
yellow eyes and half open mouth within startling proximity of his person.
With streaming coat
tails and shiny silk hat Professor Archimedes Q. Porter fled through the
moonlight close upon the heels of Mr. Samuel T. Philander.
Before them a point of
the jungle ran out toward a narrow promontory, and it was for the heaven of the
trees he saw there that Mr. Samuel T. Philander directed his prodigious leaps
and bounds; while from the shadows of this same spot peered two keen eyes in
interested appreciation of the race.
It was Tarzan of the
Apes who watched, with face a-grin, this odd game of follow-the-leader.
He knew the two men
were safe enough from attack in so far as the lion was concerned. The very fact
that Numa had foregone such easy prey at all convinced the wise forest craft of
Tarzan that Numa's belly already was full.
The lion might stalk
them until hungry again; but the chances were that if not angered he would soon
tire of the sport, and slink away to his jungle lair.
Really, the one great
danger was that one of the men might stumble and fall, and then the yellow
devil would be upon him in a moment and the joy of the kill would be too great
a temptation to withstand.
So Tarzan swung quickly
to a lower limb in line with the approaching fugitives; and as Mr. Samuel T.
Philander came panting and blowing beneath him, already too spent to struggle
up to the safety of the limb, Tarzan reached down and, grasping him by the
collar of his coat, yanked him to the limb by his side.
Another moment brought
the professor within the sphere of the friendly grip, and he, too, was drawn
upward to safety just as the baffled Numa, with a roar, leaped to recover his
vanishing quarry.
For a moment the two
men clung panting to the great branch, while Tarzan squatted with his back to
the stem of the tree, watching them with mingled curiosity and amusement.
It was the professor
who first broke the silence.
“I am deeply pained,
Mr. Philander, that you should have evinced such a paucity of manly courage in
the presence of one of the lower orders, and by your crass timidity have caused
me to exert myself to such an unaccustomed degree in order that I might resume
my discourse. As I was saying, Mr. Philander, when you interrupted me, the
Moors--”
“Professor Archimedes Q.
Porter,” broke in Mr. Philander, in icy tones, “the time has arrived when
patience becomes a crime and mayhem appears garbed in the mantle of virtue. You
have accused me of cowardice. You have insinuated that you ran only to overtake
me, not to escape the clutches of the lion. Have a care, Professor Archimedes
Q. Porter! I am a desperate man. Goaded by long-suffering patience the worm
will turn.”
“Tut, tut, Mr.
Philander, tut, tut!” cautioned Professor Porter; “you forget yourself.”
“I forget nothing as
yet, Professor Archimedes Q. Porter; but, believe me, sir, I am tottering on
the verge of forgetfulness as to your exalted position in the world of science,
and your gray hairs.”
The professor sat in
silence for a few minutes, and the darkness hid the grim smile that wreathed
his wrinkled countenance. Presently he spoke.
“Look here, Skinny
Philander,” he said, in belligerent tones, “if you are lookin' for a scrap,
peel off your coat and come on down on the ground, and I'll punch your head
just as I did sixty years ago in the alley back of Porky Evans' barn.”
“Ark!” gasped the
astonished Mr. Philander. “Lordy, how good that sounds! When you're human, Ark,
I love you; but somehow it seems as though you had forgotten how to be human
for the last twenty years.”
The professor reached
out a thin, trembling old hand through the darkness until it found his old
friend's shoulder.
“Forgive me, Skinny,”
he said, softly. “It hasn't been quite twenty years, and God alone knows how
hard I have tried to be ‘human’ for Jane's sake, and yours, too, since He took
my other Jane away.”
Another old hand stole
up from Mr. Philander's side to clasp the one that lay upon his shoulder, and
no other message could better have translated the one heart to the other.
They did not speak for
some minutes. The lion below them paced nervously back and forth. The third
figure in the tree was hidden by the dense shadows near the stem. He, too, was
silent--motionless as a graven image.
“You certainly pulled
me up into this tree just in time,” said the professor at last. “I want to
thank you. You saved my life.”
“But I didn't pull you
up here, Professor,” said Mr. Philander. “Bless me! The excitement of the
moment quite caused me to forget that I myself was drawn up here by some
outside agency--there must be someone or something in this tree with us.”
“Eh?” ejaculated
Professor Porter. “Are you quite positive, Mr. Philander?”
“Most positive,
Professor,” replied Mr. Philander, “and,” he added, “I think we should thank
the party. He may be sitting right next to you now, Professor.”
“Eh? What's that? Tut,
tut, Mr. Philander, tut, tut!” said Professor Porter, edging cautiously nearer
to Mr. Philander.
Just then it occurred
to Tarzan of the Apes that Numa had loitered beneath the tree for a sufficient
length of time, so he raised his young head toward the heavens, and there rang
out upon the terrified ears of the two old men the awful warning challenge of
the anthropoid.
The two friends,
huddled trembling in their precarious position on the limb, saw the great lion
halt in his restless pacing as the blood-curdling cry smote his ears, and then
slink quickly into the jungle, to be instantly lost to view.
“Even the lion trembles
in fear,” whispered Mr. Philander.
“Most remarkable, most
remarkable,” murmured Professor Porter, clutching frantically at Mr. Philander
to regain the balance which the sudden fright had so perilously endangered.
Unfortunately for them both, Mr. Philander's center of equilibrium was at that
very moment hanging upon the ragged edge of nothing, so that it needed but the
gentle impetus supplied by the additional weight of Professor Porter's body to
topple the devoted secretary from the limb.
For a moment they
swayed uncertainly, and then, with mingled and most unscholarly shrieks, they
pitched headlong from the tree, locked in frenzied embrace.
It was quite some
moments ere either moved, for both were positive that any such attempt would
reveal so many breaks and fractures as to make further progress impossible.
At length Professor
Porter made an attempt to move one leg. To his surprise, it responded to his
will as in days gone by. He now drew up its mate and stretched it forth again.
“Most remarkable, most
remarkable,” he murmured.
“Thank God, Professor,”
whispered Mr. Philander, fervently, “you are not dead, then?”
“Tut, tut, Mr.
Philander, tut, tut,” cautioned Professor Porter, “I do not know with accuracy
as yet.”
With infinite
solicitude Professor Porter wiggled his right arm--joy! It was intact.
Breathlessly he waved his left arm above his prostrate body--it waved!
“Most remarkable, most
remarkable,” he said.
“To whom are you
signaling, Professor?” asked Mr. Philander, in an excited tone.
Professor Porter
deigned to make no response to this puerile inquiry. Instead he raised his head
gently from the ground, nodding it back and forth a half dozen times.
“Most remarkable,” he
breathed. “It remains intact.”
Mr. Philander had not
moved from where he had fallen; he had not dared the attempt. How indeed could
one move when one's arms and legs and back were broken?
One eye was buried in
the soft loam; the other, rolling sidewise, was fixed in awe upon the strange
gyrations of Professor Porter.
“How sad!” exclaimed
Mr. Philander, half aloud. “Concussion of the brain, superinducing total mental
aberration. How very sad indeed! and for one still so young!”
Professor Porter rolled
over upon his stomach; gingerly he bowed his back until he resembled a huge tom
cat in proximity to a yelping dog. Then he sat up and felt of various portions
of his anatomy.
“They are all here,” he
exclaimed. “Most remarkable!”
Whereupon he arose,
and, bending a scathing glance upon the still prostrate form of Mr. Samuel T.
Philander, he said:
“Tut, tut, Mr.
Philander; this is no time to indulge in slothful ease. We must be up and
doing.”
Mr. Philander lifted
his other eye out of the mud and gazed in speechless rage at Professor Porter.
Then he attempted to rise; nor could there have been any more surprised than he
when his efforts were immediately crowned with marked success.
He was still bursting
with rage, however, at the cruel injustice of Professor Porter's insinuation,
and was on the point of rendering a tart rejoinder when his eyes fell upon a
strange figure standing a few paces away, scrutinizing them intently.
Professor Porter had
recovered his shiny silk hat, which he had brushed carefully upon the sleeve of
his coat and replaced upon his head. When he saw Mr. Philander pointing to
something behind him he turned to behold a giant, naked but for a loin cloth
and a few metal ornaments, standing motionless before him.
“Good evening, sir!”
said the professor, lifting his hat.
For reply the giant
motioned them to follow him, and set off up the beach in the direction from
which they had recently come.
“I think it the better
part of discretion to follow him,” said Mr. Philander.
“Tut, tut, Mr.
Philander,” returned the professor. “A short time since you were advancing a
most logical argument in substantiation of your theory that camp lay directly
south of us. I was skeptical, but you finally convinced me; so now I am
positive that toward the south we must travel to reach our friends. Therefore I
shall continue south.”
“But, Professor Porter,
this man may know better than either of us. He seems to be indigenous to this
part of the world. Let us at least follow him for a short distance.”
“Tut, tut, Mr.
Philander,” repeated the professor. “I am a difficult man to convince, but when
once convinced my decision is unalterable. I shall continue in the proper
direction, if I have to circumambulate the continent of Africa to reach my
destination.”
Further argument was
interrupted by Tarzan, who, seeing that these strange men were not following
him, had returned to their side.
Again he beckoned to
them; but still they stood in argument.
Presently the ape-man
lost patience with their stupid ignorance. He grasped the frightened Mr.
Philander by the shoulder, and before that worthy gentleman knew whether he was
being killed or merely maimed for life, Tarzan had tied one end of his rope
securely about Mr. Philander's neck.
“Tut, tut, Mr.
Philander,” remonstrated Professor Porter; “it is most unbeseeming in you to
submit to such indignities.”
But scarcely were the
words out of his mouth ere he, too, had been seized and securely bound by the
neck with the same rope. Then Tarzan set off toward the north, leading the now
thoroughly frightened professor and his secretary.
In deathly silence they
proceeded for what seemed hours to the two tired and hopeless old men; but
presently as they topped a little rise of ground they were overjoyed to see the
cabin lying before them, not a hundred yards distant.
Here Tarzan released
them, and, pointing toward the little building, vanished into the jungle beside
them.
“Most remarkable, most
remarkable!” gasped the professor. “But you see, Mr. Philander, that I was
quite right, as usual; and but for your stubborn willfulness we should have
escaped a series of most humiliating, not to say dangerous accidents. Pray
allow yourself to be guided by a more mature and practical mind hereafter when
in need of wise counsel.”
Mr. Samuel T. Philander
was too much relieved at the happy outcome to their adventure to take umbrage
at the professor's cruel fling. Instead he grasped his friend's arm and
hastened him forward in the direction of the cabin.
It was a much-relieved
party of castaways that found itself once more united. Dawn discovered them
still recounting their various adventures and speculating upon the identity of
the strange guardian and protector they had found on this savage shore.
Esmeralda was positive
that it was none other than an angel of the Lord, sent down especially to watch
over them.
“Had you seen him
devour the raw meat of the lion, Esmeralda,” laughed Clayton, “you would have
thought him a very material angel.”
“There was nothing
heavenly about his voice,” said Jane Porter, with a little shudder at
recollection of the awful roar which had followed the killing of the lioness.
“Nor did it precisely
comport with my preconceived ideas of the dignity of divine messengers,”
remarked Professor Porter, “when the--ah--gentleman tied two highly respectable
and erudite scholars neck to neck and dragged them through the jungle as though
they had been cows.”
As it was now quite
light, the party, none of whom had eaten or slept since the previous morning,
began to bestir themselves to prepare food.
The mutineers of the
Arrow had landed a small supply of dried meats, canned soups and vegetables,
crackers, flour, tea, and coffee for the five they had marooned, and these were
hurriedly drawn upon to satisfy the craving of long-famished appetites.
The next task was to
make the cabin habitable, and to this end it was decided to at once remove the
gruesome relics of the tragedy which had taken place there on some bygone day.
Professor Porter and
Mr. Philander were deeply interested in examining the skeletons. The two
larger, they stated, had belonged to a male and female of one of the higher
white races.
The smallest skeleton
was given but passing attention, as its location, in the crib, left no doubt as
to its having been the infant offspring of this unhappy couple.
As they were preparing
the skeleton of the man for burial, Clayton discovered a massive ring which had
evidently encircled the man's finger at the time of his death, for one of the
slender bones of the hand still lay within the golden bauble.
Picking it up to
examine it, Clayton gave a cry of astonishment, for the ring bore the crest of
the house of Greystoke.
At the same time, Jane
discovered the books in the cupboard, and on opening the fly-leaf of one of
them saw the name, John Clayton, London. In a second book which she hurriedly
examined was the single name, Greystoke.
“Why, Mr. Clayton,” she
cried, “what does this mean? Here are the names of some of your own people in
these books.”
“And here,” he replied
gravely, “is the great ring of the house of Greystoke which has been lost since
my uncle, John Clayton, the former Lord Greystoke, disappeared, presumably lost
at sea.”
“But how do you account
for these things being here, in this savage African jungle?” exclaimed the
girl.
“There is but one way
to account for it, Miss Porter,” said Clayton. “The late Lord Greystoke was not
drowned. He died here in this cabin and this poor thing upon the floor is all
that is mortal of him.”
“Then this must have
been Lady Greystoke,” said Jane reverently, indicating the poor mass of bones
upon the bed.
“The beautiful Lady
Alice,” replied Clayton, “of whose many virtues and remarkable personal charms
I often have heard my mother and father speak. Poor woman,” he murmured sadly.
With deep reverence and
solemnity the bodies of the late Lord and Lady Greystoke were buried beside
their little African cabin, and between them was placed the tiny skeleton of
the baby of Kala, the ape.
As Mr. Philander was
placing the frail bones of the infant in a bit of sail cloth, he examined the
skull minutely. Then he called Professor Porter to his side, and the two argued
in low tones for several minutes.
“Most remarkable, most
remarkable,” said Professor Porter.
“Bless me,” said Mr.
Philander, “we must acquaint Mr. Clayton with our discovery at once.”
“Tut, tut, Mr.
Philander, tut, tut!” remonstrated Professor Archimedes Q. Porter. “‘Let the
dead past bury its dead.’”
And so the white-haired
old man repeated the burial service over this strange grave, while his four
companions stood with bowed and uncovered heads about him.
From the trees Tarzan
of the Apes watched the solemn ceremony; but most of all he watched the sweet
face and graceful figure of Jane Porter.
In his savage,
untutored breast new emotions were stirring. He could not fathom them. He
wondered why he felt so great an interest in these people--why he had gone to
such pains to save the three men. But he did not wonder why he had torn Sabor
from the tender flesh of the strange girl.
Surely the men were
stupid and ridiculous and cowardly. Even Manu, the monkey, was more intelligent
than they. If these were creatures of his own kind he was doubtful if his past
pride in blood was warranted.
But the girl, ah--that
was a different matter. He did not reason here. He knew that she was created to
be protected, and that he was created to protect her.
He wondered why they
had dug a great hole in the ground merely to bury dry bones. Surely there was
no sense in that; no one wanted to steal dry bones.
Had there been meat
upon them he could have understood, for thus alone might one keep his meat from
Dango, the hyena, and the other robbers of the jungle.
When the grave had been
filled with earth the little party turned back toward the cabin, and Esmeralda,
still weeping copiously for the two she had never heard of before today, and
who had been dead twenty years, chanced to glance toward the harbor. Instantly
her tears ceased.
“Look at them low down
white trash out there!” she shrilled, pointing toward the Arrow. “They-all's a
desecrating us, right here on this here perverted island.”
And, sure enough, the
Arrow was being worked toward the open sea, slowly, through the harbor's
entrance.
“They promised to leave
us firearms and ammunition,” said Clayton. “The merciless beasts!”
“It is the work of that
fellow they call Snipes, I am sure,” said Jane. “King was a scoundrel, but he
had a little sense of humanity. If they had not killed him I know that he would
have seen that we were properly provided for before they left us to our fate.”
“I regret that they did
not visit us before sailing,” said Professor Porter. “I had proposed requesting
them to leave the treasure with us, as I shall be a ruined man if that is lost.”
Jane looked at her
father sadly.
“Never mind, dear,” she
said. “It wouldn't have done any good, because it is solely for the treasure
that they killed their officers and landed us upon this awful shore.”
“Tut, tut, child, tut,
tut!” replied Professor Porter. “You are a good child, but inexperienced in
practical matters,” and Professor Porter turned and walked slowly away toward
the jungle, his hands clasped beneath his long coat tails and his eyes bent
upon the ground.
His daughter watched
him with a pathetic smile upon her lips, and then turning to Mr. Philander, she
whispered:
“Please don't let him
wander off again as he did yesterday. We depend upon you, you know, to keep a
close watch upon him.”
“He becomes more
difficult to handle each day,” replied Mr. Philander, with a sigh and a shake
of his head. “I presume he is now off to report to the directors of the Zoo
that one of their lions was at large last night. Oh, Miss Jane, you don't know
what I have to contend with.”
“Yes, I do, Mr.
Philander; but while we all love him, you alone are best fitted to manage him;
for, regardless of what he may say to you, he respects your great learning,
and, therefore, has immense confidence in your judgment. The poor dear cannot
differentiate between erudition and wisdom.”
Mr. Philander, with a
mildly puzzled expression on his face, turned to pursue Professor Porter, and in
his mind he was revolving the question of whether he should feel complimented
or aggrieved at Miss Porter's rather backhanded compliment.
Tarzan had seen the
consternation depicted upon the faces of the little group as they witnessed the
departure of the Arrow; so, as the ship was a wonderful novelty to him in
addition, he determined to hasten out to the point of land at the north of the
harbor's mouth and obtain a nearer view of the boat, as well as to learn, if
possible, the direction of its flight.
Swinging through the
trees with great speed, he reached the point only a moment after the ship had
passed out of the harbor, so that he obtained an excellent view of the wonders
of this strange, floating house.
There were some twenty
men running hither and thither about the deck, pulling and hauling on ropes.
A light land breeze was
blowing, and the ship had been worked through the harbor's mouth under scant
sail, but now that they had cleared the point every available shred of canvas
was being spread that she might stand out to sea as handily as possible.
Tarzan watched the
graceful movements of the ship in rapt admiration, and longed to be aboard her.
Presently his keen eyes caught the faintest suspicion of smoke on the far
northern horizon, and he wondered over the cause of such a thing out on the
great water.
About the same time the
look-out on the Arrow must have discerned it, for in a few minutes Tarzan saw
the sails being shifted and shortened. The ship came about, and presently he
knew that she was beating back toward land.
A man at the bows was
constantly heaving into the sea a rope to the end of which a small object was
fastened. Tarzan wondered what the purpose of this action might be.
At last the ship came
up directly into the wind; the anchor was lowered; down came the sails. There
was great scurrying about on deck.
A boat was lowered, and
in it a great chest was placed. Then a dozen sailors bent to the oars and
pulled rapidly toward the point where Tarzan crouched in the branches of a
tree.
In the stern of the
boat, as it drew nearer, Tarzan saw the rat-faced man.
It was but a few
minutes later that the boat touched the beach. The men jumped out and lifted
the great chest to the sand. They were on the north side of the point so that
their presence was concealed from those at the cabin.
The men argued angrily
for a moment. Then the rat-faced one, with several companions, ascended the low
bluff on which stood the tree that concealed Tarzan. They looked about for
several minutes.
“Here is a good place,”
said the rat-faced sailor, indicating a spot beneath Tarzan's tree.
“It is as good as any,”
replied one of his companions. “If they catch us with the treasure aboard it
will all be confiscated anyway. We might as well bury it here on the chance
that some of us will escape the gallows to come back and enjoy it later.”
The rat-faced one now
called to the men who had remained at the boat, and they came slowly up the
bank carrying picks and shovels.
“Hurry, you!” cried
Snipes.
“Stow it!” retorted one
of the men, in a surly tone. “You're no admiral, you damned shrimp.”
“I'm Cap'n here,
though, I'll have you to understand, you swab,” shrieked Snipes, with a volley
of frightful oaths.
“Steady, boys,”
cautioned one of the men who had not spoken before. “It ain't goin' to get us
nothing by fightin' amongst ourselves.”
“Right enough,” replied
the sailor who had resented Snipes' autocratic tones; “but it ain't a-goin' to
get nobody nothin' to put on airs in this bloomin' company neither.”
“You fellows dig here,”
said Snipes, indicating a spot beneath the tree. “And while you're diggin',
Peter kin be a-makin' of a map of the location so's we kin find it again. You,
Tom, and Bill, take a couple more down and fetch up the chest.”
“Wot are you a-goin' to
do?” asked he of the previous altercation. “Just boss?”
“Git busy there,”
growled Snipes. “You didn't think your Cap'n was a-goin' to dig with a shovel,
did you?”
The men all looked up
angrily. None of them liked Snipes, and this disagreeable show of authority
since he had murdered King, the real head and ringleader of the mutineers, had
only added fuel to the flames of their hatred.
“Do you mean to say
that you don't intend to take a shovel, and lend a hand with this work? Your
shoulder's not hurt so all-fired bad as that,” said Tarrant, the sailor who had
before spoken.
“Not by a damned sight,”
replied Snipes, fingering the butt of his revolver nervously.
“Then, by God,” replied
Tarrant, “if you won't take a shovel you'll take a pickax.”
With the words he
raised his pick above his head, and, with a mighty blow, he buried the point in
Snipes' brain.
For a moment the men
stood silently looking at the result of their fellow's grim humor. Then one of
them spoke.
“Served the skunk jolly
well right,” he said.
One of the others
commenced to ply his pick to the ground. The soil was soft and he threw aside
the pick and grasped a shovel; then the others joined him. There was no further
comment on the killing, but the men worked in a better frame of mind than they
had since Snipes had assumed command.
When they had a trench
of ample size to bury the chest, Tarrant suggested that they enlarge it and
inter Snipes' body on top of the chest.
“It might 'elp fool any
as 'appened to be diggin' 'ereabouts,” he explained.
The others saw the
cunning of the suggestion, and so the trench was lengthened to accommodate the
corpse, and in the center a deeper hole was excavated for the box, which was
first wrapped in sailcloth and then lowered to its place, which brought its top
about a foot below the bottom of the grave. Earth was shovelled in and tramped
down about the chest until the bottom of the grave showed level and uniform.
Two of the men rolled
the rat-faced corpse unceremoniously into the grave, after first stripping it
of its weapons and various other articles which the several members of the
party coveted for their own.
They then filled the
grave with earth and tramped upon it until it would hold no more.
The balance of the
loose earth was thrown far and wide, and a mass of dead undergrowth spread in
as natural a manner as possible over the new-made grave to obliterate all signs
of the ground having been disturbed.
Their work done the
sailors returned to the small boat, and pulled off rapidly toward the Arrow.
The breeze had
increased considerably, and as the smoke upon the horizon was now plainly
discernible in considerable volume, the mutineers lost no time in getting under
full sail and bearing away toward the southwest.
Tarzan, an interested
spectator of all that had taken place, sat speculating on the strange actions
of these peculiar creatures.
Men were indeed more
foolish and more cruel than the beasts of the jungle! How fortunate was he who
lived in the peace and security of the great forest!
Tarzan wondered what
the chest they had buried contained. If they did not want it why did they not
merely throw it into the water? That would have been much easier.
Ah, he thought, but
they do want it. They have hidden it here because they intend returning for it
later.
Tarzan dropped to the
ground and commenced to examine the earth about the excavation. He was looking
to see if these creatures had dropped anything which he might like to own. Soon
he discovered a spade hidden by the underbrush which they had laid upon the
grave.
He seized it and
attempted to use it as he had seen the sailors do. It was awkward work and hurt
his bare feet, but he persevered until he had partially uncovered the body.
This he dragged from the grave and laid to one side.
Then he continued
digging until he had unearthed the chest. This also he dragged to the side of
the corpse. Then he filled in the smaller hole below the grave, replaced the
body and the earth around and above it, covered it over with underbrush, and
returned to the chest.
Four sailors had
sweated beneath the burden of its weight --Tarzan of the Apes picked it up as
though it had been an empty packing case, and with the spade slung to his back
by a piece of rope, carried it off into the densest part of the jungle.
He could not well
negotiate the trees with his awkward burden, but he kept to the trails, and so
made fairly good time.
For several hours he
traveled a little north of east until he came to an impenetrable wall of matted
and tangled vegetation. Then he took to the lower branches, and in another
fifteen minutes he emerged into the amphitheater of the apes, where they met in
council, or to celebrate the rites of the Dum-Dum.
Near the center of the
clearing, and not far from the drum, or altar, he commenced to dig. This was
harder work than turning up the freshly excavated earth at the grave, but
Tarzan of the Apes was persevering and so he kept at his labor until he was
rewarded by seeing a hole sufficiently deep to receive the chest and
effectually hide it from view.
Why had he gone to all
this labor without knowing the value of the contents of the chest?
Tarzan of the Apes had
a man's figure and a man's brain, but he was an ape by training and
environment. His brain told him that the chest contained something valuable, or
the men would not have hidden it. His training had taught him to imitate
whatever was new and unusual, and now the natural curiosity, which is as common
to men as to apes, prompted him to open the chest and examine its contents.
But the heavy lock and
massive iron bands baffled both his cunning and his immense strength, so that
he was compelled to bury the chest without having his curiosity satisfied.
By the time Tarzan had
hunted his way back to the vicinity of the cabin, feeding as he went, it was
quite dark.
Within the little
building a light was burning, for Clayton had found an unopened tin of oil
which had stood intact for twenty years, a part of the supplies left with the
Claytons by Black Michael. The lamps also were still useable, and thus the
interior of the cabin appeared as bright as day to the astonished Tarzan.
He had often wondered
at the exact purpose of the lamps. His reading and the pictures had told him
what they were, but he had no idea of how they could be made to produce the
wondrous sunlight that some of his pictures had portrayed them as diffusing
upon all surrounding objects.
As he approached the
window nearest the door he saw that the cabin had been divided into two rooms
by a rough partition of boughs and sailcloth.
In the front room were
the three men; the two older deep in argument, while the younger, tilted back
against the wall on an improvised stool, was deeply engrossed in reading one of
Tarzan's books.
Tarzan was not
particularly interested in the men, however, so he sought the other window.
There was the girl. How beautiful her features! How delicate her snowy skin!
She was writing at
Tarzan's own table beneath the window. Upon a pile of grasses at the far side
of the room lay the Negress asleep.
For an hour Tarzan
feasted his eyes upon her while she wrote. How he longed to speak to her, but
he dared not attempt it, for he was convinced that, like the young man, she
would not understand him, and he feared, too, that he might frighten her away.
At length she arose,
leaving her manuscript upon the table. She went to the bed upon which had been
spread several layers of soft grasses. These she rearranged.
Then she loosened the
soft mass of golden hair which crowned her head. Like a shimmering waterfall
turned to burnished metal by a dying sun it fell about her oval face; in waving
lines, below her waist it tumbled.
Tarzan was spellbound.
Then she extinguished the lamp and all within the cabin was wrapped in
Cimmerian darkness.
Still Tarzan watched.
Creeping close beneath the window he waited, listening, for half an hour. At
last he was rewarded by the sounds of the regular breathing within which
denotes sleep.
Cautiously he intruded
his hand between the meshes of the lattice until his whole arm was within the
cabin. Carefully he felt upon the desk. At last he grasped the manuscript upon
which Jane Porter had been writing, and as cautiously withdrew his arm and
hand, holding the precious treasure.
Tarzan folded the
sheets into a small parcel which he tucked into the quiver with his arrows.
Then he melted away into the jungle as softly and as noiselessly as a shadow.
Early the following
morning Tarzan awoke, and his first thought of the new day, as the last of
yesterday, was of the wonderful writing which lay hidden in his quiver.
Hurriedly he brought it
forth, hoping against hope that he could read what the beautiful white girl had
written there the preceding evening.
At the first glance he
suffered a bitter disappointment; never before had he so yearned for anything
as now he did for the ability to interpret a message from that golden-haired
divinity who had come so suddenly and so unexpectedly into his life.
What did it matter if
the message were not intended for him? It was an expression of her thoughts,
and that was sufficient for Tarzan of the Apes.
And now to be baffled
by strange, uncouth characters the like of which he had never seen before! Why,
they even tipped in the opposite direction from all that he had ever examined
either in printed books or the difficult script of the few letters he had
found.
Even the little bugs of
the black book were familiar friends, though their arrangement meant nothing to
him; but these bugs were new and unheard of.
For twenty minutes he
pored over them, when suddenly they commenced to take familiar though distorted
shapes. Ah, they were his old friends, but badly crippled.
Then he began to make
out a word here and a word there. His heart leaped for joy. He could read it,
and he would.
In another half hour he
was progressing rapidly, and, but for an exceptional word now and again, he
found it very plain sailing.
Here is what he read:
West coast of Africa,
about 10x degrees south latitude. (So Mr. Clayton says.)
February 3 (?), 1909.
DEAREST HAZEL:
It seems foolish to
write you a letter that you may never see, but I simply must tell somebody of
our awful experiences since we sailed from Europe on the ill-fated Arrow.
If we never return to
civilization, as now seems only too likely, this will at least prove a brief
record of the events which led up to our final fate, whatever it may be.
As you know, we were
supposed to have set out upon a scientific expedition to the Congo. Papa was
presumed to entertain some wondrous theory of an unthinkably ancient
civilization, the remains of which lay buried somewhere in the Congo valley.
But after we were well under sail the truth came out.
It seems that an old
bookworm who has a book and curio shop in Baltimore discovered between the
leaves of a very old Spanish manuscript a letter written in 1550 detailing the
adventures of a crew of mutineers of a Spanish galleon bound from Spain to
South America with a vast treasure of “doubloons” and “pieces of eight,” I
suppose, for they certainly sound weird and piraty.
The writer had been one
of the crew, and the letter was to his son, who was, at the very time the
letter was written, master of a Spanish merchantman.
Many years had elapsed
since the events the letter narrated had transpired, and the old man had become
a respected citizen of an obscure Spanish town, but the love of gold was still
so strong upon him that he risked all to acquaint his son with the means of
attaining fabulous wealth for them both.
The writer told how
when but a week out from Spain the crew had mutinied and murdered every officer
and man who opposed them; but they defeated their own ends by this very act,
for there was none left competent to navigate a ship at sea.
They were blown hither
and thither for two months, until sick and dying of scurvy, starvation, and
thirst, they had been wrecked on a small islet.
The galleon was washed
high upon the beach where she went to pieces; but not before the survivors, who
numbered but ten souls, had rescued one of the great chests of treasure.
This they buried well
up on the island, and for three years they lived there in constant hope of
being rescued.
One by one they
sickened and died, until only one man was left, the writer of the letter.
The men had built a
boat from the wreckage of the galleon, but having no idea where the island was
located they had not dared to put to sea.
When all were dead
except himself, however, the awful loneliness so weighed upon the mind of the
sole survivor that he could endure it no longer, and choosing to risk death
upon the open sea rather than madness on the lonely isle, he set sail in his
little boat after nearly a year of solitude.
Fortunately he sailed
due north, and within a week was in the track of the Spanish merchantmen plying
between the West Indies and Spain, and was picked up by one of these vessels
homeward bound.
The story he told was
merely one of shipwreck in which all but a few had perished, the balance,
except himself, dying after they reached the island. He did not mention the
mutiny or the chest of buried treasure.
The master of the
merchantman assured him that from the position at which they had picked him up,
and the prevailing winds for the past week he could have been on no other
island than one of the Cape Verde group, which lie off the West Coast of Africa
in about 16x or 17x north latitude.
His letter described
the island minutely, as well as the location of the treasure, and was
accompanied by the crudest, funniest little old map you ever saw; with trees
and rocks all marked by scrawly X's to show the exact spot where the treasure
had been buried.
When papa explained the
real nature of the expedition, my heart sank, for I know so well how visionary
and impractical the poor dear has always been that I feared that he had again
been duped; especially when he told me he had paid a thousand dollars for the
letter and map.
To add to my distress,
I learned that he had borrowed ten thousand dollars more from Robert Canler,
and had given his notes for the amount.
Mr. Canler had asked
for no security, and you know, dearie, what that will mean for me if papa
cannot meet them. Oh, how I detest that man!
We all tried to look on
the bright side of things, but Mr. Philander, and Mr. Clayton--he joined us in
London just for the adventure--both felt as skeptical as I.
Well, to make a long
story short, we found the island and the treasure--a great iron-bound oak
chest, wrapped in many layers of oiled sailcloth, and as strong and firm as
when it had been buried nearly two hundred years ago.
It was simply filled
with gold coin, and was so heavy that four men bent underneath its weight.
The horrid thing seems
to bring nothing but murder and misfortune to those who have anything to do
with it, for three days after we sailed from the Cape Verde Islands our own
crew mutinied and killed every one of their officers.
Oh, it was the most
terrifying experience one could imagine--I cannot even write of it.
They were going to kill
us too, but one of them, the leader, named King, would not let them, and so
they sailed south along the coast to a lonely spot where they found a good
harbor, and here they landed and have left us.
They sailed away with
the treasure to-day, but Mr. Clayton says they will meet with a fate similar to
the mutineers of the ancient galleon, because King, the only man aboard who
knew aught of navigation, was murdered on the beach by one of the men the day
we landed.
I wish you could know
Mr. Clayton; he is the dearest fellow imaginable, and unless I am mistaken he
has fallen very much in love with me.
He is the only son of
Lord Greystoke, and some day will inherit the title and estates. In addition,
he is wealthy in his own right, but the fact that he is going to be an English
Lord makes me very sad--you know what my sentiments have always been relative to
American girls who married titled foreigners. Oh, if he were only a plain
American gentleman!
But it isn't his fault,
poor fellow, and in everything except birth he would do credit to my country,
and that is the greatest compliment I know how to pay any man.
We have had the most
weird experiences since we were landed here. Papa and Mr. Philander lost in the
jungle, and chased by a real lion.
Mr. Clayton lost, and
attacked twice by wild beasts. Esmeralda and I cornered in an old cabin by a
perfectly awful man-eating lioness. Oh, it was simply “terrifical,” as
Esmeralda would say.
But the strangest part
of it all is the wonderful creature who rescued us. I have not seen him, but
Mr. Clayton and papa and Mr. Philander have, and they say that he is a perfectly
god-like white man tanned to a dusky brown, with the strength of a wild
elephant, the agility of a monkey, and the bravery of a lion.
He speaks no English
and vanishes as quickly and as mysteriously after he has performed some
valorous deed, as though he were a disembodied spirit.
Then we have another
weird neighbor, who printed a beautiful sign in English and tacked it on the
door of his cabin, which we have preempted, warning us to destroy none of his
belongings, and signing himself “Tarzan of the Apes.”
We have never seen him,
though we think he is about, for one of the sailors, who was going to shoot Mr.
Clayton in the back, received a spear in his shoulder from some unseen hand in
the jungle.
The sailors left us but
a meager supply of food, so, as we have only a single revolver with but three
cartridges left in it, we do not know how we can procure meat, though Mr.
Philander says that we can exist indefinitely on the wild fruit and nuts which
abound in the jungle.
I am very tired now, so
I shall go to my funny bed of grasses which Mr. Clayton gathered for me, but
will add to this from day to day as things happen.
Lovingly, Jane Porter.
To Hazel Strong,
Baltimore, Md.
Tarzan sat in a brown
study for a long time after he finished reading the letter. It was filled with
so many new and wonderful things that his brain was in a whirl as he attempted
to digest them all.
So they did not know
that he was Tarzan of the Apes. He would tell them.
In his tree he had
constructed a rude shelter of leaves and boughs, beneath which, protected from
the rain, he had placed the few treasures brought from the cabin. Among these
were some pencils.
He took one, and
beneath Jane Porter's signature he wrote:
I am Tarzan of the Apes
He thought that would
be sufficient. Later he would return the letter to the cabin.
In the matter of food,
thought Tarzan, they had no need to worry--he would provide, and he did.
The next morning Jane
found her missing letter in the exact spot from which it had disappeared two
nights before. She was mystified; but when she saw the printed words beneath
her signature, she felt a cold, clammy chill run up her spine. She showed the
letter, or rather the last sheet with the signature, to Clayton.
“And to think,” she said,
“that uncanny thing was probably watching me all the time that I was
writing--oo! It makes me shudder just to think of it.”
“But he must be
friendly,” reassured Clayton, “for he has returned your letter, nor did he
offer to harm you, and unless I am mistaken he left a very substantial memento
of his friendship outside the cabin door last night, for I just found the
carcass of a wild boar there as I came out.”
From then on scarcely a
day passed that did not bring its offering of game or other food. Sometimes it
was a young deer, again a quantity of strange, cooked food--cassava cakes
pilfered from the village of Mbonga--or a boar, or leopard, and once a lion.
Tarzan derived the
greatest pleasure of his life in hunting meat for these strangers. It seemed to
him that no pleasure on earth could compare with laboring for the welfare and
protection of the beautiful white girl.
Some day he would
venture into the camp in daylight and talk with these people through the medium
of the little bugs which were familiar to them and to Tarzan.
But he found it
difficult to overcome the timidity of the wild thing of the forest, and so day
followed day without seeing a fulfillment of his good intentions.
The party in the camp,
emboldened by familiarity, wandered farther and yet farther into the jungle in
search of nuts and fruit.
Scarcely a day passed
that did not find Professor Porter straying in his preoccupied indifference
toward the jaws of death. Mr. Samuel T. Philander, never what one might call
robust, was worn to the shadow of a shadow through the ceaseless worry and
mental distraction resultant from his Herculean efforts to safeguard the
professor.
A month passed. Tarzan
had finally determined to visit the camp by daylight.
It was early afternoon.
Clayton had wandered to the point at the harbor's mouth to look for passing
vessels. Here he kept a great mass of wood, high piled, ready to be ignited as
a signal should a steamer or a sail top the far horizon.
Professor Porter was
wandering along the beach south of the camp with Mr. Philander at his elbow,
urging him to turn his steps back before the two became again the sport of some
savage beast.
The others gone, Jane
and Esmeralda had wandered into the jungle to gather fruit, and in their search
were led farther and farther from the cabin.
Tarzan waited in
silence before the door of the little house until they should return. His
thoughts were of the beautiful white girl. They were always of her now. He
wondered if she would fear him, and the thought all but caused him to
relinquish his plan.
He was rapidly becoming
impatient for her return, that he might feast his eyes upon her and be near
her, perhaps touch her. The ape-man knew no god, but he was as near to
worshipping his divinity as mortal man ever comes to worship. While he waited
he passed the time printing a message to her; whether he intended giving it to
her he himself could not have told, but he took infinite pleasure in seeing his
thoughts expressed in print--in which he was not so uncivilized after all. He
wrote:
I am Tarzan of the
Apes. I want you. I am yours. You are mine. We live here together always in my
house. I will bring you the best of fruits, the tenderest deer, the finest
meats that roam the jungle. I will hunt for you. I am the greatest of the
jungle fighters. I will fight for you. I am the mightiest of the jungle
fighters. You are Jane Porter, I saw it in your letter. When you see this you
will know that it is for you and that Tarzan of the Apes loves you.
As he stood, straight
as a young Indian, by the door, waiting after he had finished the message,
there came to his keen ears a familiar sound. It was the passing of a great ape
through the lower branches of the forest.
For an instant he
listened intently, and then from the jungle came the agonized scream of a
woman, and Tarzan of the Apes, dropping his first love letter upon the ground,
shot like a panther into the forest.
Clayton, also, heard
the scream, and Professor Porter and Mr. Philander, and in a few minutes they
came panting to the cabin, calling out to each other a volley of excited
questions as they approached. A glance within confirmed their worst fears.
Jane and Esmeralda were
not there.
Instantly, Clayton,
followed by the two old men, plunged into the jungle, calling the girl's name
aloud. For half an hour they stumbled on, until Clayton, by merest chance, came
upon the prostrate form of Esmeralda.
He stopped beside her,
feeling for her pulse and then listening for her heartbeats. She lived. He
shook her.
“Esmeralda!” he
shrieked in her ear. “Esmeralda! For God's sake, where is Miss Porter? What has
happened? Esmeralda!”
Slowly Esmeralda opened
her eyes. She saw Clayton. She saw the jungle about her.
“Oh, Gaberelle!” she
screamed, and fainted again.
By this time Professor
Porter and Mr. Philander had come up.
“What shall we do, Mr.
Clayton?” asked the old professor. “Where shall we look? God could not have
been so cruel as to take my little girl away from me now.”
“We must arouse
Esmeralda first,” replied Clayton. “She can tell us what has happened.
Esmeralda!” he cried again, shaking the black woman roughly by the shoulder.
“O Gaberelle, I want to
die!” cried the poor woman, but with eyes fast closed. “Let me die, dear Lord,
don't let me see that awful face again.”
“Come, come, Esmeralda,”
cried Clayton.
“The Lord isn't here;
it's Mr. Clayton. Open your eyes.”
Esmeralda did as she
was bade.
“O Gaberelle! Thank the
Lord,” she said.
“Where's Miss Porter?
What happened?” questioned Clayton.
“Ain't Miss Jane here?”
cried Esmeralda, sitting up with wonderful celerity for one of her bulk. “Oh,
Lord, now I remember! It must have took her away,” and the Negress commenced to
sob, and wail her lamentations.
“What took her away?”
cried Professor Porter.
“A great big giant all
covered with hair.”
“A gorilla, Esmeralda?”
questioned Mr. Philander, and the three men scarcely breathed as he voiced the
horrible thought.
“I thought it was the
devil; but I guess it must have been one of them gorilephants. Oh, my poor
baby, my poor little honey,” and again Esmeralda broke into uncontrollable
sobbing.
Clayton immediately
began to look about for tracks, but he could find nothing save a confusion of
trampled grasses in the close vicinity, and his woodcraft was too meager for
the translation of what he did see.
All the balance of the
day they sought through the jungle; but as night drew on they were forced to
give up in despair and hopelessness, for they did not even know in what
direction the thing had borne Jane.
It was long after dark
ere they reached the cabin, and a sad and grief-stricken party it was that sat
silently within the little structure.
Professor Porter
finally broke the silence. His tones were no longer those of the erudite pedant
theorizing upon the abstract and the unknowable; but those of the man of
action-- determined, but tinged also by a note of indescribable hopelessness
and grief which wrung an answering pang from Clayton's heart.
“I shall lie down now,”
said the old man, “and try to sleep. Early to-morrow, as soon as it is light, I
shall take what food I can carry and continue the search until I have found
Jane. I will not return without her.”
His companions did not
reply at once. Each was immersed in his own sorrowful thoughts, and each knew,
as did the old professor, what the last words meant--Professor Porter would
never return from the jungle.
At length Clayton arose
and laid his hand gently upon Professor Porter's bent old shoulder.
“I shall go with you,
of course,” he said.
“I knew that you would
offer--that you would wish to go, Mr. Clayton; but you must not. Jane is beyond
human assistance now. What was once my dear little girl shall not lie alone and
friendless in the awful jungle.
“The same vines and
leaves will cover us, the same rains beat upon us; and when the spirit of her
mother is abroad, it will find us together in death, as it has always found us
in life.
“No; it is I alone who
may go, for she was my daughter-- all that was left on earth for me to love.”
“I shall go with you,”
said Clayton simply.
The old man looked up,
regarding the strong, handsome face of William Cecil Clayton intently. Perhaps
he read there the love that lay in the heart beneath--the love for his
daughter.
He had been too
preoccupied with his own scholarly thoughts in the past to consider the little
occurrences, the chance words, which would have indicated to a more practical
man that these young people were being drawn more and more closely to one
another. Now they came back to him, one by one.
“As you wish,” he said.
“You may count on me,
also,” said Mr. Philander.
“No, my dear old
friend,” said Professor Porter. “We may not all go. It would be cruelly wicked
to leave poor Esmeralda here alone, and three of us would be no more successful
than one.
“There be enough dead
things in the cruel forest as it is. Come--let us try to sleep a little.”
From the time Tarzan
left the tribe of great anthropoids in which he had been raised, it was torn by
continual strife and discord. Terkoz proved a cruel and capricious king, so
that, one by one, many of the older and weaker apes, upon whom he was particularly
prone to vent his brutish nature, took their families and sought the quiet and
safety of the far interior.
But at last those who
remained were driven to desperation by the continued truculence of Terkoz, and
it so happened that one of them recalled the parting admonition of Tarzan:
“If you have a chief
who is cruel, do not do as the other apes do, and attempt, any one of you, to
pit yourself against him alone. But, instead, let two or three or four of you
attack him together. Then, if you will do this, no chief will dare to be other
than he should be, for four of you can kill any chief who may ever be over you.”
And the ape who
recalled this wise counsel repeated it to several of his fellows, so that when
Terkoz returned to the tribe that day he found a warm reception awaiting him.
There were no
formalities. As Terkoz reached the group, five huge, hairy beasts sprang upon
him.
At heart he was an
arrant coward, which is the way with bullies among apes as well as among men;
so he did not remain to fight and die, but tore himself away from them as
quickly as he could and fled into the sheltering boughs of the forest.
Two more attempts he
made to rejoin the tribe, but on each occasion he was set upon and driven away.
At last he gave it up, and turned, foaming with rage and hatred, into the
jungle.
For several days he
wandered aimlessly, nursing his spite and looking for some weak thing on which
to vent his pent anger.
It was in this state of
mind that the horrible, man-like beast, swinging from tree to tree, came
suddenly upon two women in the jungle.
He was right above them
when he discovered them. The first intimation Jane Porter had of his presence
was when the great hairy body dropped to the earth beside her, and she saw the
awful face and the snarling, hideous mouth thrust within a foot of her.
One piercing scream
escaped her lips as the brute hand clutched her arm. Then she was dragged
toward those awful fangs which yawned at her throat. But ere they touched that
fair skin another mood claimed the anthropoid.
The tribe had kept his
women. He must find others to replace them. This hairless white ape would be
the first of his new household, and so he threw her roughly across his broad,
hairy shoulders and leaped back into the trees, bearing Jane away.
Esmeralda's scream of
terror had mingled once with that of Jane, and then, as was Esmeralda's manner
under stress of emergency which required presence of mind, she swooned.
But Jane did not once
lose consciousness. It is true that that awful face, pressing close to hers,
and the stench of the foul breath beating upon her nostrils, paralyzed her with
terror; but her brain was clear, and she comprehended all that transpired.
With what seemed to her
marvelous rapidity the brute bore her through the forest, but still she did not
cry out or struggle. The sudden advent of the ape had confused her to such an
extent that she thought now that he was bearing her toward the beach.
For this reason she
conserved her energies and her voice until she could see that they had
approached near enough to the camp to attract the succor she craved.
She could not have
known it, but she was being borne farther and farther into the impenetrable
jungle.
The scream that had
brought Clayton and the two older men stumbling through the undergrowth had led
Tarzan of the Apes straight to where Esmeralda lay, but it was not Esmeralda in
whom his interest centered, though pausing over her he saw that she was unhurt.
For a moment he
scrutinized the ground below and the trees above, until the ape that was in him
by virtue of training and environment, combined with the intelligence that was
his by right of birth, told his wondrous woodcraft the whole story as plainly
as though he had seen the thing happen with his own eyes.
And then he was gone
again into the swaying trees, following the high-flung spoor which no other
human eye could have detected, much less translated.
At boughs' ends, where
the anthropoid swings from one tree to another, there is most to mark the
trail, but least to point the direction of the quarry; for there the pressure
is downward always, toward the small end of the branch, whether the ape be
leaving or entering a tree. Nearer the center of the tree, where the signs of
passage are fainter, the direction is plainly marked.
Here, on this branch, a
caterpillar has been crushed by the fugitive's great foot, and Tarzan knows
instinctively where that same foot would touch in the next stride. Here he
looks to find a tiny particle of the demolished larva, ofttimes not more than a
speck of moisture.
Again, a minute bit of
bark has been upturned by the scraping hand, and the direction of the break
indicates the direction of the passage. Or some great limb, or the stem of the
tree itself has been brushed by the hairy body, and a tiny shred of hair tells
him by the direction from which it is wedged beneath the bark that he is on the
right trail.
Nor does he need to
check his speed to catch these seemingly faint records of the fleeing beast.
To Tarzan they stand
out boldly against all the myriad other scars and bruises and signs upon the
leafy way. But strongest of all is the scent, for Tarzan is pursuing up the
wind, and his trained nostrils are as sensitive as a hound's.
There are those who
believe that the lower orders are specially endowed by nature with better
olfactory nerves than man, but it is merely a matter of development.
Man's survival does not
hinge so greatly upon the perfection of his senses. His power to reason has
relieved them of many of their duties, and so they have, to some extent,
atrophied, as have the muscles which move the ears and scalp, merely from
disuse.
The muscles are there,
about the ears and beneath the scalp, and so are the nerves which transmit
sensations to the brain, but they are under-developed because they are not
needed.
Not so with Tarzan of
the Apes. From early infancy his survival had depended upon acuteness of
eyesight, hearing, smell, touch, and taste far more than upon the more slowly
developed organ of reason.
The least developed of
all in Tarzan was the sense of taste, for he could eat luscious fruits, or raw flesh,
long buried with almost equal appreciation; but in that he differed but
slightly from more civilized epicures.
Almost silently the
ape-man sped on in the track of Terkoz and his prey, but the sound of his
approach reached the ears of the fleeing beast and spurred it on to greater
speed.
Three miles were
covered before Tarzan overtook them, and then Terkoz, seeing that further
flight was futile, dropped to the ground in a small open glade, that he might
turn and fight for his prize or be free to escape unhampered if he saw that the
pursuer was more than a match for him.
He still grasped Jane
in one great arm as Tarzan bounded like a leopard into the arena which nature
had provided for this primeval-like battle.
When Terkoz saw that it
was Tarzan who pursued him, he jumped to the conclusion that this was Tarzan's
woman, since they were of the same kind--white and hairless--and so he rejoiced
at this opportunity for double revenge upon his hated enemy.
To Jane the strange
apparition of this god-like man was as wine to sick nerves.
From the description
which Clayton and her father and Mr. Philander had given her, she knew that it
must be the same wonderful creature who had saved them, and she saw in him only
a protector and a friend.
But as Terkoz pushed
her roughly aside to meet Tarzan's charge, and she saw the great proportions of
the ape and the mighty muscles and the fierce fangs, her heart quailed. How
could any vanquish such a mighty antagonist?
Like two charging bulls
they came together, and like two wolves sought each other's throat. Against the
long canines of the ape was pitted the thin blade of the man's knife.
Jane--her lithe, young
form flattened against the trunk of a great tree, her hands tight pressed
against her rising and falling bosom, and her eyes wide with mingled horror,
fascination, fear, and admiration--watched the primordial ape battle with the
primeval man for possession of a woman--for her.
As the great muscles of
the man's back and shoulders knotted beneath the tension of his efforts, and
the huge biceps and forearm held at bay those mighty tusks, the veil of
centuries of civilization and culture was swept from the blurred vision of the
Baltimore girl.
When the long knife
drank deep a dozen times of Terkoz' heart's blood, and the great carcass rolled
lifeless upon the ground, it was a primeval woman who sprang forward with
outstretched arms toward the primeval man who had fought for her and won her.
And Tarzan?
He did what no
red-blooded man needs lessons in doing. He took his woman in his arms and
smothered her upturned, panting lips with kisses.
For a moment Jane lay
there with half-closed eyes. For a moment--the first in her young life--she
knew the meaning of love.
But as suddenly as the
veil had been withdrawn it dropped again, and an outraged conscience suffused
her face with its scarlet mantle, and a mortified woman thrust Tarzan of the
Apes from her and buried her face in her hands.
Tarzan had been
surprised when he had found the girl he had learned to love after a vague and
abstract manner a willing prisoner in his arms. Now he was surprised that she
repulsed him.
He came close to her
once more and took hold of her arm. She turned upon him like a tigress,
striking his great breast with her tiny hands.
Tarzan could not
understand it.
A moment ago and it had
been his intention to hasten Jane back to her people, but that little moment
was lost now in the dim and distant past of things which were but can never be
again, and with it the good intentions had gone to join the impossible.
Since then Tarzan of
the Apes had felt a warm, lithe form close pressed to his. Hot, sweet breath
against his cheek and mouth had fanned a new flame to life within his breast,
and perfect lips had clung to his in burning kisses that had seared a deep
brand into his soul--a brand which marked a new Tarzan.
Again he laid his hand
upon her arm. Again she repulsed him. And then Tarzan of the Apes did just what
his first ancestor would have done.
He took his woman in
his arms and carried her into the jungle.
Early the following
morning the four within the little cabin by the beach were awakened by the
booming of a cannon. Clayton was the first to rush out, and there, beyond the
harbor's mouth, he saw two vessels lying at anchor.
One was the Arrow and
the other a small French cruiser. The sides of the latter were crowded with men
gazing shoreward, and it was evident to Clayton, as to the others who had now
joined him, that the gun which they had heard had been fired to attract their
attention if they still remained at the cabin.
Both vessels lay at a
considerable distance from shore, and it was doubtful if their glasses would
locate the waving hats of the little party far in between the harbor's points.
Esmeralda had removed
her red apron and was waving it frantically above her head; but Clayton, still
fearing that even this might not be seen, hurried off toward the northern point
where lay his signal pyre ready for the match.
It seemed an age to
him, as to those who waited breathlessly behind, ere he reached the great pile
of dry branches and underbrush.
As he broke from the
dense wood and came in sight of the vessels again, he was filled with
consternation to see that the Arrow was making sail and that the cruiser was
already under way.
Quickly lighting the
pyre in a dozen places, he hurried to the extreme point of the promontory,
where he stripped off his shirt, and, tying it to a fallen branch, stood waving
it back and forth above him.
But still the vessels
continued to stand out; and he had given up all hope, when the great column of
smoke, rising above the forest in one dense vertical shaft, attracted the
attention of a lookout aboard the cruiser, and instantly a dozen glasses were leveled
on the beach.
Presently Clayton saw
the two ships come about again; and while the Arrow lay drifting quietly on the
ocean, the cruiser steamed slowly back toward shore.
At some distance away
she stopped, and a boat was lowered and dispatched toward the beach.
As it was drawn up a
young officer stepped out.
“Monsieur Clayton, I
presume?” he asked.
“Thank God, you have
come!” was Clayton's reply. “And it may be that it is not too late even now.”
“What do you mean,
Monsieur?” asked the officer.
Clayton told of the
abduction of Jane Porter and the need of armed men to aid in the search for
her.
“Mon Dieu!” exclaimed
the officer, sadly. “Yesterday and it would not have been too late. Today and
it may be better that the poor lady were never found. It is horrible, Monsieur.
It is too horrible.”
Other boats had now put
off from the cruiser, and Clayton, having pointed out the harbor's entrance to
the officer, entered the boat with him and its nose was turned toward the
little landlocked bay, into which the other craft followed.
Soon the entire party
had landed where stood Professor Porter, Mr. Philander and the weeping
Esmeralda.
Among the officers in
the last boats to put off from the cruiser was the commander of the vessel; and
when he had heard the story of Jane's abduction, he generously called for
volunteers to accompany Professor Porter and Clayton in their search.
Not an officer or a man
was there of those brave and sympathetic Frenchmen who did not quickly beg
leave to be one of the expedition.
The commander selected
twenty men and two officers, Lieutenant D'Arnot and Lieutenant Charpentier. A
boat was dispatched to the cruiser for provisions, ammunition, and carbines;
the men were already armed with revolvers.
Then, to Clayton's
inquiries as to how they had happened to anchor off shore and fire a signal
gun, the commander, Captain Dufranne, explained that a month before they had
sighted the Arrow bearing southwest under considerable canvas, and that when
they had signaled her to come about she had but crowded on more sail.
They had kept her
hull-up until sunset, firing several shots after her, but the next morning she
was nowhere to be seen. They had then continued to cruise up and down the coast
for several weeks, and had about forgotten the incident of the recent chase,
when, early one morning a few days before the lookout had described a vessel
laboring in the trough of a heavy sea and evidently entirely out of control.
As they steamed nearer
to the derelict they were surprised to note that it was the same vessel that
had run from them a few weeks earlier. Her forestaysail and mizzen spanker were
set as though an effort had been made to hold her head up into the wind, but
the sheets had parted, and the sails were tearing to ribbons in the half gale
of wind.
In the high sea that
was running it was a difficult and dangerous task to attempt to put a prize
crew aboard her; and as no signs of life had been seen above deck, it was
decided to stand by until the wind and sea abated; but just then a figure was
seen clinging to the rail and feebly waving a mute signal of despair toward
them.
Immediately a boat's
crew was ordered out and an attempt was successfully made to board the Arrow.
The sight that met the
Frenchmen's eyes as they clambered over the ship's side was appalling.
A dozen dead and dying
men rolled hither and thither upon the pitching deck, the living intermingled
with the dead. Two of the corpses appeared to have been partially devoured as
though by wolves.
The prize crew soon had
the vessel under proper sail once more and the living members of the
ill-starred company carried below to their hammocks.
The dead were wrapped
in tarpaulins and lashed on deck to be identified by their comrades before
being consigned to the deep.
None of the living was
conscious when the Frenchmen reached the Arrow's deck. Even the poor devil who
had waved the single despairing signal of distress had lapsed into
unconsciousness before he had learned whether it had availed or not.
It did not take the
French officer long to learn what had caused the terrible condition aboard; for
when water and brandy were sought to restore the men, it was found that there
was none, nor even food of any description.
He immediately
signalled to the cruiser to send water, medicine, and provisions, and another
boat made the perilous trip to the Arrow.
When restoratives had
been applied several of the men regained consciousness, and then the whole
story was told. That part of it we know up to the sailing of the Arrow after
the murder of Snipes, and the burial of his body above the treasure chest.
It seems that the
pursuit by the cruiser had so terrorized the mutineers that they had continued
out across the Atlantic for several days after losing her; but on discovering
the meager supply of water and provisions aboard, they had turned back toward
the east.
With no one on board
who understood navigation, discussions soon arose as to their whereabouts; and
as three days' sailing to the east did not raise land, they bore off to the
north, fearing that the high north winds that had prevailed had driven them
south of the southern extremity of Africa.
They kept on a
north-northeasterly course for two days, when they were overtaken by a calm
which lasted for nearly a week. Their water was gone, and in another day they
would be without food.
Conditions changed
rapidly from bad to worse. One man went mad and leaped overboard. Soon another
opened his veins and drank his own blood.
When he died they threw
him overboard also, though there were those among them who wanted to keep the
corpse on board. Hunger was changing them from human beasts to wild beasts.
Two days before they
had been picked up by the cruiser they had become too weak to handle the
vessel, and that same day three men died. On the following morning it was seen
that one of the corpses had been partially devoured.
All that day the men
lay glaring at each other like beasts of prey, and the following morning two of
the corpses lay almost entirely stripped of flesh.
The men were but little
stronger for their ghoulish repast, for the want of water was by far the
greatest agony with which they had to contend. And then the cruiser had come.
When those who could
had recovered, the entire story had been told to the French commander; but the
men were too ignorant to be able to tell him at just what point on the coast
the professor and his party had been marooned, so the cruiser had steamed
slowly along within sight of land, firing occasional signal guns and scanning
every inch of the beach with glasses.
They had anchored by
night so as not to neglect a particle of the shore line, and it had happened
that the preceding night had brought them off the very beach where lay the
little camp they sought.
The signal guns of the
afternoon before had not been heard by those on shore, it was presumed, because
they had doubtless been in the thick of the jungle searching for Jane Porter,
where the noise of their own crashing through the underbrush would have drowned
the report of a far distant gun.
By the time the two
parties had narrated their several adventures, the cruiser's boat had returned
with supplies and arms for the expedition.
Within a few minutes
the little body of sailors and the two French officers, together with Professor
Porter and Clayton, set off upon their hopeless and ill-fated quest into the
untracked jungle.
When Jane realized that
she was being borne away a captive by the strange forest creature who had
rescued her from the clutches of the ape she struggled desperately to escape,
but the strong arms that held her as easily as though she had been but a
day-old babe only pressed a little more tightly.
So presently she gave
up the futile effort and lay quietly, looking through half-closed lids at the
faces of the man who strode easily through the tangled undergrowth with her.
The face above her was
one of extraordinary beauty.
A perfect type of the
strongly masculine, unmarred by dissipation, or brutal or degrading passions.
For, though Tarzan of the Apes was a killer of men and of beasts, he killed as
the hunter kills, dispassionately, except on those rare occasions when he had
killed for hate--though not the brooding, malevolent hate which marks the
features of its own with hideous lines.
When Tarzan killed he
more often smiled than scowled, and smiles are the foundation of beauty.
One thing the girl had
noticed particularly when she had seen Tarzan rushing upon Terkoz--the vivid
scarlet band upon his forehead, from above the left eye to the scalp; but now
as she scanned his features she noticed that it was gone, and only a thin white
line marked the spot where it had been.
As she lay more quietly
in his arms Tarzan slightly relaxed his grip upon her.
Once he looked down
into her eyes and smiled, and the girl had to close her own to shut out the
vision of that handsome, winning face.
Presently Tarzan took
to the trees, and Jane, wondering that she felt no fear, began to realize that
in many respects she had never felt more secure in her whole life than now as
she lay in the arms of this strong, wild creature, being borne, God alone knew
where or to what fate, deeper and deeper into the savage fastness of the
untamed forest.
When, with closed eyes,
she commenced to speculate upon the future, and terrifying fears were conjured
by a vivid imagination, she had but to raise her lids and look upon that noble
face so close to hers to dissipate the last remnant of apprehension.
No, he could never harm
her; of that she was convinced when she translated the fine features and the
frank, brave eyes above her into the chivalry which they proclaimed.
On and on they went through
what seemed to Jane a solid mass of verdure, yet ever there appeared to open
before this forest god a passage, as by magic, which closed behind them as they
passed.
Scarce a branch scraped
against her, yet above and below, before and behind, the view presented naught
but a solid mass of inextricably interwoven branches and creepers.
As Tarzan moved
steadily onward his mind was occupied with many strange and new thoughts. Here
was a problem the like of which he had never encountered, and he felt rather
than reasoned that he must meet it as a man and not as an ape.
The free movement
through the middle terrace, which was the route he had followed for the most
part, had helped to cool the ardor of the first fierce passion of his new found
love.
Now he discovered
himself speculating upon the fate which would have fallen to the girl had he
not rescued her from Terkoz.
He knew why the ape had
not killed her, and he commenced to compare his intentions with those of
Terkoz.
True, it was the order of
the jungle for the male to take his mate by force; but could Tarzan be guided
by the laws of the beasts? Was not Tarzan a Man? But what did men do? He was
puzzled; for he did not know.
He wished that he might
ask the girl, and then it came to him that she had already answered him in the
futile struggle she had made to escape and to repulse him.
But now they had come
to their destination, and Tarzan of the Apes with Jane in his strong arms,
swung lightly to the turf of the arena where the great apes held their councils
and danced the wild orgy of the Dum-Dum.
Though they had come
many miles, it was still but midafternoon, and the amphitheater was bathed in
the half light which filtered through the maze of encircling foliage.
The green turf looked soft
and cool and inviting. The myriad noises of the jungle seemed far distant and
hushed to a mere echo of blurred sounds, rising and falling like the surf upon
a remote shore.
A feeling of dreamy
peacefulness stole over Jane as she sank down upon the grass where Tarzan had
placed her, and as she looked up at his great figure towering above her, there
was added a strange sense of perfect security.
As she watched him from
beneath half-closed lids, Tarzan crossed the little circular clearing toward
the trees upon the further side. She noted the graceful majesty of his
carriage, the perfect symmetry of his magnificent figure and the poise of his
well-shaped head upon his broad shoulders.
What a perfect
creature! There could be naught of cruelty or baseness beneath that godlike
exterior. Never, she thought had such a man strode the earth since God created
the first in his own image.
With a bound Tarzan
sprang into the trees and disappeared. Jane wondered where he had gone. Had he
left her there to her fate in the lonely jungle?
She glanced nervously
about. Every vine and bush seemed but the lurking-place of some huge and
horrible beast waiting to bury gleaming fangs into her soft flesh. Every sound
she magnified into the stealthy creeping of a sinuous and malignant body.
How different now that
he had left her!
For a few minutes that
seemed hours to the frightened girl, she sat with tense nerves waiting for the
spring of the crouching thing that was to end her misery of apprehension.
She almost prayed for
the cruel teeth that would give her unconsciousness and surcease from the agony
of fear.
She heard a sudden,
slight sound behind her. With a cry she sprang to her feet and turned to face
her end.
There stood Tarzan, his
arms filled with ripe and luscious fruit.
Jane reeled and would
have fallen, had not Tarzan, dropping his burden, caught her in his arms. She
did not lose consciousness, but she clung tightly to him, shuddering and
trembling like a frightened deer.
Tarzan of the Apes
stroked her soft hair and tried to comfort and quiet her as Kala had him, when,
as a little ape, he had been frightened by Sabor, the lioness, or Histah, the
snake.
Once he pressed his
lips lightly upon her forehead, and she did not move, but closed her eyes and sighed.
She could not analyze
her feelings, nor did she wish to attempt it. She was satisfied to feel the
safety of those strong arms, and to leave her future to fate; for the last few
hours had taught her to trust this strange wild creature of the forest as she
would have trusted but few of the men of her acquaintance.
As she thought of the
strangeness of it, there commenced to dawn upon her the realization that she
had, possibly, learned something else which she had never really known
before--love. She wondered and then she smiled.
And still smiling, she
pushed Tarzan gently away; and looking at him with a half-smiling,
half-quizzical expression that made her face wholly entrancing, she pointed to
the fruit upon the ground, and seated herself upon the edge of the earthen drum
of the anthropoids, for hunger was asserting itself.
Tarzan quickly gathered
up the fruit, and, bringing it, laid it at her feet; and then he, too, sat upon
the drum beside her, and with his knife opened and prepared the various fruits
for her meal.
Together and in silence
they ate, occasionally stealing sly glances at one another, until finally Jane
broke into a merry laugh in which Tarzan joined.
“I wish you spoke
English,” said the girl.
Tarzan shook his head,
and an expression of wistful and pathetic longing sobered his laughing eyes.
Then Jane tried
speaking to him in French, and then in German; but she had to laugh at her own
blundering attempt at the latter tongue.
“Anyway,” she said to
him in English, “you understand my German as well as they did in Berlin.”
Tarzan had long since
reached a decision as to what his future procedure should be. He had had time
to recollect all that he had read of the ways of men and women in the books at
the cabin. He would act as he imagined the men in the books would have acted were
they in his place.
Again he rose and went
into the trees, but first he tried to explain by means of signs that he would
return shortly, and he did so well that Jane understood and was not afraid when
he had gone.
Only a feeling of
loneliness came over her and she watched the point where he had disappeared,
with longing eyes, awaiting his return. As before, she was appraised of his
presence by a soft sound behind her, and turned to see him coming across the
turf with a great armful of branches.
Then he went back again
into the jungle and in a few minutes reappeared with a quantity of soft grasses
and ferns.
Two more trips he made
until he had quite a pile of material at hand.
Then he spread the
ferns and grasses upon the ground in a soft flat bed, and above it leaned many
branches together so that they met a few feet over its center. Upon these he
spread layers of huge leaves of the great elephant's ear, and with more
branches and more leaves he closed one end of the little shelter he had built.
Then they sat down
together again upon the edge of the drum and tried to talk by signs.
The magnificent diamond
locket which hung about Tarzan's neck, had been a source of much wonderment to
Jane. She pointed to it now, and Tarzan removed it and handed the pretty bauble
to her.
She saw that it was the
work of a skilled artisan and that the diamonds were of great brilliancy and
superbly set, but the cutting of them denoted that they were of a former day.
She noticed too that the locket opened, and, pressing the hidden clasp, she saw
the two halves spring apart to reveal in either section an ivory miniature.
One was of a beautiful
woman and the other might have been a likeness of the man who sat beside her,
except for a subtle difference of expression that was scarcely definable.
She looked up at Tarzan
to find him leaning toward her gazing on the miniatures with an expression of
astonishment. He reached out his hand for the locket and took it away from her,
examining the likenesses within with unmistakable signs of surprise and new
interest. His manner clearly denoted that he had never before seen them, nor
imagined that the locket opened.
This fact caused Jane
to indulge in further speculation, and it taxed her imagination to picture how
this beautiful ornament came into the possession of a wild and savage creature
of the unexplored jungles of Africa.
Still more wonderful
was how it contained the likeness of one who might be a brother, or, more
likely, the father of this woodland demi-god who was even ignorant of the fact
that the locket opened.
Tarzan was still gazing
with fixity at the two faces. Presently he removed the quiver from his
shoulder, and emptying the arrows upon the ground reached into the bottom of
the bag-like receptacle and drew forth a flat object wrapped in many soft
leaves and tied with bits of long grass.
Carefully he unwrapped
it, removing layer after layer of leaves until at length he held a photograph
in his hand.
Pointing to the
miniature of the man within the locket he handed the photograph to Jane,
holding the open locket beside it.
The photograph only
served to puzzle the girl still more, for it was evidently another likeness of
the same man whose picture rested in the locket beside that of the beautiful
young woman.
Tarzan was looking at
her with an expression of puzzled bewilderment in his eyes as she glanced up at
him. He seemed to be framing a question with his lips.
The girl pointed to the
photograph and then to the miniature and then to him, as though to indicate
that she thought the likenesses were of him, but he only shook his head, and
then shrugging his great shoulders, he took the photograph from her and having
carefully rewrapped it, placed it again in the bottom of his quiver.
For a few moments he
sat in silence, his eyes bent upon the ground, while Jane held the little
locket in her hand, turning it over and over in an endeavor to find some
further clue that might lead to the identity of its original owner.
At length a simple
explanation occurred to her.
The locket had belonged
to Lord Greystoke, and the likenesses were of himself and Lady Alice.
This wild creature had
simply found it in the cabin by the beach. How stupid of her not to have
thought of that solution before.
But to account for the
strange likeness between Lord Greystoke and this forest god--that was quite
beyond her, and it is not strange that she could not imagine that this naked
savage was indeed an English nobleman.
At length Tarzan looked
up to watch the girl as she examined the locket. He could not fathom the
meaning of the faces within, but he could read the interest and fascination
upon the face of the live young creature by his side.
She noticed that he was
watching her and thinking that he wished his ornament again she held it out to
him. He took it from her and taking the chain in his two hands he placed it
about her neck, smiling at her expression of surprise at his unexpected gift.
Jane shook her head
vehemently and would have removed the golden links from about her throat, but
Tarzan would not let her. Taking her hands in his, when she insisted upon it,
he held them tightly to prevent her.
At last she desisted
and with a little laugh raised the locket to her lips.
Tarzan did not know
precisely what she meant, but he guessed correctly that it was her way of
acknowledging the gift, and so he rose, and taking the locket in his hand,
stooped gravely like some courtier of old, and pressed his lips upon it where
hers had rested.
It was a stately and
gallant little compliment performed with the grace and dignity of utter
unconsciousness of self. It was the hall-mark of his aristocratic birth, the
natural outcropping of many generations of fine breeding, an hereditary
instinct of graciousness which a lifetime of uncouth and savage training and
environment could not eradicate.
It was growing dark
now, and so they ate again of the fruit which was both food and drink for them;
then Tarzan rose, and leading Jane to the little bower he had erected, motioned
her to go within.
For the first time in
hours a feeling of fear swept over her, and Tarzan felt her draw away as though
shrinking from him.
Contact with this girl
for half a day had left a very diferent Tarzan from the one on whom the
morning's sun had risen.
Now, in every fiber of
his being, heredity spoke louder than training.
He had not in one swift
transition become a polished gentleman from a savage ape-man, but at last the
instincts of the former predominated, and over all was the desire to please the
woman he loved, and to appear well in her eyes.
So Tarzan of the Apes
did the only thing he knew to assure Jane of her safety. He removed his hunting
knife from its sheath and handed it to her hilt first, again motioning her into
the bower.
The girl understood,
and taking the long knife she entered and lay down upon the soft grasses while
Tarzan of the Apes stretched himself upon the ground across the entrance.
And thus the rising sun
found them in the morning.
When Jane awoke, she
did not at first recall the strange events of the preceding day, and so she
wondered at her odd surroundings--the little leafy bower, the soft grasses of
her bed, the unfamiliar prospect from the opening at her feet.
Slowly the circumstances
of her position crept one by one into her mind. And then a great wonderment
arose in her heart--a mighty wave of thankfulness and gratitude that though she
had been in such terrible danger, yet she was unharmed.
She moved to the
entrance of the shelter to look for Tarzan. He was gone; but this time no fear
assailed her for she knew that he would return.
In the grass at the
entrance to her bower she saw the imprint of his body where he had lain all
night to guard her. She knew that the fact that he had been there was all that
had permitted her to sleep in such peaceful security.
With him near, who
could entertain fear? She wondered if there was another man on earth with whom
a girl could feel so safe in the heart of this savage African jungle. Even the
lions and panthers had no fears for her now.
She looked up to see
his lithe form drop softly from a near-by tree. As he caught her eyes upon him
his face lighted with that frank and radiant smile that had won her confidence
the day before.
As he approached her
Jane's heart beat faster and her eyes brightened as they had never done before
at the approach of any man.
He had again been
gathering fruit and this he laid at the entrance of her bower. Once more they
sat down together to eat.
Jane commenced to
wonder what his plans were. Would he take her back to the beach or would he
keep her here? Suddenly she realized that the matter did not seem to give her
much concern. Could it be that she did not care!
She began to
comprehend, also, that she was entirely contented sitting here by the side of
this smiling giant eating delicious fruit in a sylvan paradise far within the
remote depths of an African jungle--that she was contented and very happy.
She could not
understand it. Her reason told her that she should be torn by wild anxieties,
weighted by dread fears, cast down by gloomy forebodings; but instead, her
heart was singing and she was smiling into the answering face of the man beside
her.
When they had finished
their breakfast Tarzan went to her bower and recovered his knife. The girl had
entirely forgotten it. She realized that it was because she had forgotten the
fear that prompted her to accept it.
Motioning her to
follow, Tarzan walked toward the trees at the edge of the arena, and taking her
in one strong arm swung to the branches above.
The girl knew that he
was taking her back to her people, and she could not understand the sudden
feeling of loneliness and sorrow which crept over her.
For hours they swung
slowly along.
Tarzan of the Apes did
not hurry. He tried to draw out the sweet pleasure of that journey with those
dear arms about his neck as long as possible, and so he went far south of the
direct route to the beach.
Several times they
halted for brief rests, which Tarzan did not need, and at noon they stopped for
an hour at a little brook, where they quenched their thirst, and ate.
So it was nearly sunset
when they came to the clearing, and Tarzan, dropping to the ground beside a
great tree, parted the tall jungle grass and pointed out the little cabin to
her.
She took him by the
hand to lead him to it, that she might tell her father that this man had saved
her from death and worse than death, that he had watched over her as carefully
as a mother might have done.
But again the timidity
of the wild thing in the face of human habitation swept over Tarzan of the
Apes. He drew back, shaking his head.
The girl came close to
him, looking up with pleading eyes. Somehow she could not bear the thought of
his going back into the terrible jungle alone.
Still he shook his
head, and finally he drew her to him very gently and stooped to kiss her, but
first he looked into her eyes and waited to learn if she were pleased, or if
she would repulse him.
Just an instant the
girl hesitated, and then she realized the truth, and throwing her arms about
his neck she drew his face to hers and kissed him--unashamed.
“I love you--I love
you,” she murmured.
From far in the
distance came the faint sound of many guns. Tarzan and Jane raised their heads.
From the cabin came Mr.
Philander and Esmeralda.
From where Tarzan and
the girl stood they could not see the two vessels lying at anchor in the
harbor.
Tarzan pointed toward
the sounds, touched his breast and pointed again. She understood. He was going,
and something told her that it was because he thought her people were in
danger.
Again he kissed her.
“Come back to me,” she
whispered. “I shall wait for you--always.”
He was gone--and Jane
turned to walk across the clearing to the cabin.
Mr. Philander was the
first to see her. It was dusk and Mr. Philander was very near sighted.
“Quickly, Esmeralda!”
he cried. “Let us seek safety within; it is a lioness. Bless me!”
Esmeralda did not
bother to verify Mr. Philander's vision. His tone was enough. She was within
the cabin and had slammed and bolted the door before he had finished
pronouncing her name. The “Bless me” was startled out of Mr. Philander by the
discovery that Esmeralda, in the exuberance of her haste, had fastened him upon
the same side of the door as was the close-approaching lioness.
He beat furiously upon
the heavy portal.
“Esmeralda! Esmeralda!”
he shrieked. “Let me in. I am being devoured by a lion.”
Esmeralda thought that
the noise upon the door was made by the lioness in her attempts to pursue her,
so, after her custom, she fainted.
Mr. Philander cast a
frightened glance behind him.
Horrors! The thing was
quite close now. He tried to scramble up the side of the cabin, and succeeded
in catching a fleeting hold upon the thatched roof.
For a moment he hung
there, clawing with his feet like a cat on a clothesline, but presently a piece
of the thatch came away, and Mr. Philander, preceding it, was precipitated upon
his back.
At the instant he fell
a remarkable item of natural history leaped to his mind. If one feigns death
lions and lionesses are supposed to ignore one, according to Mr. Philander's
faulty memory.
So Mr. Philander lay as
he had fallen, frozen into the horrid semblance of death. As his arms and legs
had been extended stiffly upward as he came to earth upon his back the attitude
of death was anything but impressive.
Jane had been watching
his antics in mild-eyed surprise. Now she laughed--a little choking gurgle of a
laugh; but it was enough. Mr. Philander rolled over upon his side and peered
about. At length he discovered her.
“Jane!” he cried. “Jane
Porter. Bless me!”
He scrambled to his
feet and rushed toward her. He could not believe that it was she, and alive.
“Bless me! Where did
you come from? Where in the world have you been? How--”
“Mercy, Mr. Philander,”
interrupted the girl, “I can never remember so many questions.”
“Well, well,” said Mr.
Philander. “Bless me! I am so filled with surprise and exuberant delight at
seeing you safe and well again that I scarcely know what I am saying, really.
But come, tell me all that has happened to you.”
As the little
expedition of sailors toiled through the dense jungle searching for signs of
Jane Porter, the futility of their venture became more and more apparent, but
the grief of the old man and the hopeless eyes of the young Englishman
prevented the kind hearted D'Arnot from turning back.
He thought that there
might be a bare possibility of finding her body, or the remains of it, for he
was positive that she had been devoured by some beast of prey. He deployed his
men into a skirmish line from the point where Esmeralda had been found, and in
this extended formation they pushed their way, sweating and panting, through
the tangled vines and creepers. It was slow work. Noon found them but a few
miles inland. They halted for a brief rest then, and after pushing on for a
short distance further one of the men discovered a well-marked trail.
It was an old elephant
track, and D'Arnot after consulting with Professor Porter and Clayton decided
to follow it.
The path wound through
the jungle in a northeasterly direction, and along it the column moved in
single file.
Lieutenant D'Arnot was
in the lead and moving at a quick pace, for the trail was comparatively open.
Immediately behind him came Professor Porter, but as he could not keep pace
with the younger man D'Arnot was a hundred yards in advance when suddenly a
half dozen black warriors arose about him.
D'Arnot gave a warning
shout to his column as the blacks closed on him, but before he could draw his
revolver he had been pinioned and dragged into the jungle.
His cry had alarmed the
sailors and a dozen of them sprang forward past Professor Porter, running up
the trail to their officer's aid.
They did not know the
cause of his outcry, only that it was a warning of danger ahead. They had
rushed past the spot where D'Arnot had been seized when a spear hurled from the
jungle transfixed one of the men, and then a volley of arrows fell among them.
Raising their rifles
they fired into the underbrush in the direction from which the missiles had
come.
By this time the
balance of the party had come up, and volley after volley was fired toward the
concealed foe. It was these shots that Tarzan and Jane Porter had heard.
Lieutenant Charpentier,
who had been bringing up the rear of the column, now came running to the scene,
and on hearing the details of the ambush ordered the men to follow him, and
plunged into the tangled vegetation.
In an instant they were
in a hand-to-hand fight with some fifty black warriors of Mbonga's village.
Arrows and bullets flew thick and fast.
Queer African knives
and French gun butts mingled for a moment in savage and bloody duels, but soon
the natives fled into the jungle, leaving the Frenchmen to count their losses.
Four of the twenty were
dead, a dozen others were wounded, and Lieutenant D'Arnot was missing. Night
was falling rapidly, and their predicament was rendered doubly worse when they
could not even find the elephant trail which they had been following.
There was but one thing
to do, make camp where they were until daylight. Lieutenant Charpentier ordered
a clearing made and a circular abatis of underbrush constructed about the camp.
This work was not
completed until long after dark, the men building a huge fire in the center of
the clearing to give them light to work by.
When all was safe as
possible against attack of wild beasts and savage men, Lieutenant Charpentier
placed sentries about the little camp and the tired and hungry men threw
themselves upon the ground to sleep.
The groans of the
wounded, mingled with the roaring and growling of the great beasts which the
noise and firelight had attracted, kept sleep, except in its most fitful form,
from the tired eyes. It was a sad and hungry party that lay through the long
night praying for dawn.
The blacks who had
seized D'Arnot had not waited to participate in the fight which followed, but
instead had dragged their prisoner a little way through the jungle and then
struck the trail further on beyond the scene of the fighting in which their
fellows were engaged.
They hurried him along,
the sounds of battle growing fainter and fainter as they drew away from the
contestants until there suddenly broke upon D'Arnot's vision a good-sized
clearing at one end of which stood a thatched and palisaded village.
It was now dusk, but
the watchers at the gate saw the approaching trio and distinguished one as a
prisoner ere they reached the portals.
A cry went up within
the palisade. A great throng of women and children rushed out to meet the
party.
And then began for the
French officer the most terrifying experience which man can encounter upon
earth--the reception of a white prisoner into a village of African cannibals.
To add to the
fiendishness of their cruel savagery was the poignant memory of still crueler
barbarities practiced upon them and theirs by the white officers of that arch
hypocrite, Leopold II of Belgium, because of whose atrocities they had fled the
Congo Free State--a pitiful remnant of what once had been a mighty tribe.
They fell upon D'Arnot
tooth and nail, beating him with sticks and stones and tearing at him with
claw-like hands. Every vestige of clothing was torn from him, and the merciless
blows fell upon his bare and quivering flesh. But not once did the Frenchman
cry out in pain. He breathed a silent prayer that he be quickly delivered from
his torture.
But the death he prayed
for was not to be so easily had. Soon the warriors beat the women away from
their prisoner. He was to be saved for nobler sport than this, and the first
wave of their passion having subsided they contented themselves with crying out
taunts and insults and spitting upon him.
Presently they reached
the center of the village. There D'Arnot was bound securely to the great post
from which no live man had ever been released.
A number of the women
scattered to their several huts to fetch pots and water, while others built a
row of fires on which portions of the feast were to be boiled while the balance
would be slowly dried in strips for future use, as they expected the other
warriors to return with many prisoners. The festivities were delayed awaiting
the return of the warriors who had remained to engage in the skirmish with the
white men, so that it was quite late when all were in the village, and the
dance of death commenced to circle around the doomed officer.
Half fainting from pain
and exhaustion, D'Arnot watched from beneath half-closed lids what seemed but
the vagary of delirium, or some horrid nightmare from which he must soon awake.
The bestial faces,
daubed with color--the huge mouths and flabby hanging lips--the yellow teeth,
sharp filed--the rolling, demon eyes--the shining naked bodies--the cruel
spears. Surely no such creatures really existed upon earth--he must indeed be
dreaming.
The savage, whirling
bodies circled nearer. Now a spear sprang forth and touched his arm. The sharp
pain and the feel of hot, trickling blood assured him of the awful reality of
his hopeless position.
Another spear and then
another touched him. He closed his eyes and held his teeth firm set--he would
not cry out.
He was a soldier of
France, and he would teach these beasts how an officer and a gentleman died.
Tarzan of the Apes
needed no interpreter to translate the story of those distant shots. With Jane
Porter's kisses still warm upon his lips he was swinging with incredible
rapidity through the forest trees straight toward the village of Mbonga.
He was not interested
in the location of the encounter, for he judged that that would soon be over.
Those who were killed he could not aid, those who escaped would not need his
assistance.
It was to those who had
neither been killed or escaped that he hastened. And he knew that he would find
them by the great post in the center of Mbonga village.
Many times had Tarzan
seen Mbonga's black raiding parties return from the northward with prisoners,
and always were the same scenes enacted about that grim stake, beneath the
flaring light of many fires.
He knew, too, that they
seldom lost much time before consummating the fiendish purpose of their
captures. He doubted that he would arrive in time to do more than avenge.
On he sped. Night had
fallen and he traveled high along the upper terrace where the gorgeous tropic
moon lighted the dizzy pathway through the gently undulating branches of the
tree tops.
Presently he caught the
reflection of a distant blaze. It lay to the right of his path. It must be the
light from the camp fire the two men had built before they were
attacked--Tarzan knew nothing of the presence of the sailors.
So sure was Tarzan of
his jungle knowledge that he did not turn from his course, but passed the glare
at a distance of a half mile. It was the camp fire of the Frenchmen.
In a few minutes more
Tarzan swung into the trees above Mbonga's village. Ah, he was not quite too
late! Or, was he? He could not tell. The figure at the stake was very still,
yet the black warriors were but pricking it.
Tarzan knew their
customs. The death blow had not been struck. He could tell almost to a minute
how far the dance had gone.
In another instant
Mbonga's knife would sever one of the victim's ears--that would mark the
beginning of the end, for very shortly after only a writhing mass of mutilated
flesh would remain.
There would still be
life in it, but death then would be the only charity it craved.
The stake stood forty
feet from the nearest tree. Tarzan coiled his rope. Then there rose suddenly
above the fiendish cries of the dancing demons the awful challenge of the ape-man.
The dancers halted as
though turned to stone.
The rope sped with
singing whir high above the heads of the blacks. It was quite invisible in the
flaring lights of the camp fires.
D'Arnot opened his
eyes. A huge black, standing directly before him, lunged backward as though
felled by an invisible hand.
Struggling and
shrieking, his body, rolling from side to side, moved quickly toward the
shadows beneath the trees.
The blacks, their eyes
protruding in horror, watched spellbound.
Once beneath the trees,
the body rose straight into the air, and as it disappeared into the foliage
above, the terrified negroes, screaming with fright, broke into a mad race for
the village gate.
D'Arnot was left alone.
He was a brave man, but
he had felt the short hairs bristle upon the nape of his neck when that uncanny
cry rose upon the air.
As the writhing body of
the black soared, as though by unearthly power, into the dense foliage of the
forest, D'Arnot felt an icy shiver run along his spine, as though death had
risen from a dark grave and laid a cold and clammy finger on his flesh.
As D'Arnot watched the
spot where the body had entered the tree he heard the sounds of movement there.
The branches swayed as
though under the weight of a man's body--there was a crash and the black came
sprawling to earth again,--to lie very quietly where he had fallen.
Immediately after him
came a white body, but this one alighted erect.
D'Arnot saw a
clean-limbed young giant emerge from the shadows into the firelight and come
quickly toward him.
What could it mean? Who
could it be? Some new creature of torture and destruction, doubtless.
D'Arnot waited. His
eyes never left the face of the advancing man. Nor did the other's frank, clear
eyes waver beneath D'Arnot's fixed gaze.
D'Arnot was reassured,
but still without much hope, though he felt that that face could not mask a
cruel heart.
Without a word Tarzan
of the Apes cut the bonds which held the Frenchman. Weak from suffering and
loss of blood, he would have fallen but for the strong arm that caught him.
He felt himself lifted
from the ground. There was a sensation as of flying, and then he lost
consciousness.
When dawn broke upon
the little camp of Frenchmen in the heart of the jungle it found a sad and
disheartened group.
As soon as it was light
enough to see their surroundings Lieutenant Charpentier sent men in groups of
three in several directions to locate the trail, and in ten minutes it was
found and the expedition was hurrying back toward the beach.
It was slow work, for
they bore the bodies of six dead men, two more having succumbed during the
night, and several of those who were wounded required support to move even very
slowly.
Charpentier had decided
to return to camp for reinforcements, and then make an attempt to track down
the natives and rescue D'Arnot.
It was late in the
afternoon when the exhausted men reached the clearing by the beach, but for two
of them the return brought so great a happiness that all their suffering and
heartbreaking grief was forgotten on the instant.
As the little party
emerged from the jungle the first person that Professor Porter and Cecil
Clayton saw was Jane, standing by the cabin door.
With a little cry of
joy and relief she ran forward to greet them, throwing her arms about her
father's neck and bursting into tears for the first time since they had been
cast upon this hideous and adventurous shore.
Professor Porter strove
manfully to suppress his own emotions, but the strain upon his nerves and
weakened vitality were too much for him, and at length, burying his old face in
the girl's shoulder, he sobbed quietly like a tired child.
Jane led him toward the
cabin, and the Frenchmen turned toward the beach from which several of their
fellows were advancing to meet them.
Clayton, wishing to
leave father and daughter alone, joined the sailors and remained talking with
the officers until their boat pulled away toward the cruiser whither Lieutenant
Charpentier was bound to report the unhappy outcome of his adventure.
Then Clayton turned
back slowly toward the cabin. His heart was filled with happiness. The woman he
loved was safe.
He wondered by what
manner of miracle she had been spared. To see her alive seemed almost
unbelievable.
As he approached the
cabin he saw Jane coming out. When she saw him she hurried forward to meet him.
“Jane!” he cried, “God
has been good to us, indeed. Tell me how you escaped--what form Providence took
to save you for--us.”
He had never before
called her by her given name. Forty-eight hours before it would have suffused
Jane with a soft glow of pleasure to have heard that name from Clayton's
lips--now it frightened her.
“Mr. Clayton,” she said
quietly, extending her hand, “first let me thank you for your chivalrous
loyalty to my dear father. He has told me how noble and self-sacrificing you
have been. How can we repay you!”
Clayton noticed that
she did not return his familiar salutation, but he felt no misgivings on that
score. She had been through so much. This was no time to force his love upon
her, he quickly realized.
“I am already repaid,”
he said. “Just to see you and Professor Porter both safe, well, and together
again. I do not think that I could much longer have endured the pathos of his
quiet and uncomplaining grief.
“It was the saddest
experience of my life, Miss Porter; and then, added to it, there was my own
grief--the greatest I have ever known. But his was so hopeless--his was
pitiful. It taught me that no love, not even that of a man for his wife may be
so deep and terrible and self-sacrificing as the love of a father for his
daughter.”
The girl bowed her
head. There was a question she wanted to ask, but it seemed almost sacrilegious
in the face of the love of these two men and the terrible suffering they had
endured while she sat laughing and happy beside a godlike creature of the
forest, eating delicious fruits and looking with eyes of love into answering
eyes.
But love is a strange
master, and human nature is still stranger, so she asked her question.
“Where is the forest
man who went to rescue you? Why did he not return?”
“I do not understand,”
said Clayton. “Whom do you mean?”
“He who has saved each
of us--who saved me from the gorilla.”
“Oh,” cried Clayton, in
surprise. “It was he who rescued you? You have not told me anything of your
adventure, you know.”
“But the wood man,” she
urged. “Have you not seen him? When we heard the shots in the jungle, very
faint and far away, he left me. We had just reached the clearing, and he
hurried off in the direction of the fighting. I know he went to aid you.”
Her tone was almost
pleading--her manner tense with suppressed emotion. Clayton could not but
notice it, and he wondered, vaguely, why she was so deeply moved--so anxious to
know the whereabouts of this strange creature.
Yet a feeling of
apprehension of some impending sorrow haunted him, and in his breast, unknown
to himself, was implanted the first germ of jealousy and suspicion of the
ape-man, to whom he owed his life.
“We did not see him,”
he replied quietly. “He did not join us.” And then after a moment of thoughtful
pause: “Possibly he joined his own tribe--the men who attacked us.” He did not
know why he had said it, for he did not believe it.
The girl looked at him
wide eyed for a moment.
“No!” she exclaimed
vehemently, much too vehemently he thought. “It could not be. They were
savages.”
Clayton looked puzzled.
“He is a strange,
half-savage creature of the jungle, Miss Porter. We know nothing of him. He
neither speaks nor understands any European tongue--and his ornaments and
weapons are those of the West Coast savages.”
Clayton was speaking
rapidly.
“There are no other
human beings than savages within hundreds of miles, Miss Porter. He must belong
to the tribes which attacked us, or to some other equally savage--he may even
be a cannibal.”
Jane blanched.
“I will not believe it,”
she half whispered. “It is not true. You shall see,” she said, addressing
Clayton, “that he will come back and that he will prove that you are wrong. You
do not know him as I do. I tell you that he is a gentleman.”
Clayton was a generous
and chivalrous man, but something in the girl's breathless defense of the
forest man stirred him to unreasoning jealousy, so that for the instant he
forgot all that they owed to this wild demi-god, and he answered her with a
half sneer upon his lip.
“Possibly you are
right, Miss Porter,” he said, “but I do not think that any of us need worry
about our carrion-eating acquaintance. The chances are that he is some
half-demented castaway who will forget us more quickly, but no more surely,
than we shall forget him. He is only a beast of the jungle, Miss Porter.”
The girl did not
answer, but she felt her heart shrivel within her.
She knew that Clayton
spoke merely what he thought, and for the first time she began to analyze the
structure which supported her newfound love, and to subject its object to a
critical examination.
Slowly she turned and
walked back to the cabin. She tried to imagine her wood-god by her side in the
saloon of an ocean liner. She saw him eating with his hands, tearing his food
like a beast of prey, and wiping his greasy fingers upon his thighs. She
shuddered.
She saw him as she
introduced him to her friends--uncouth, illiterate--a boor; and the girl
winced.
She had reached her
room now, and as she sat upon the edge of her bed of ferns and grasses, with
one hand resting upon her rising and falling bosom, she felt the hard outlines
of the man's locket.
She drew it out,
holding it in the palm of her hand for a moment with tear-blurred eyes bent
upon it. Then she raised it to her lips, and crushing it there buried her face
in the soft ferns, sobbing.
“Beast?” she murmured. “Then
God make me a beast; for, man or beast, I am yours.”
She did not see Clayton
again that day. Esmeralda brought her supper to her, and she sent word to her
father that she was suffering from the reaction following her adventure.
The next morning
Clayton left early with the relief expedition in search of Lieutenant D'Arnot.
There were two hundred armed men this time, with ten officers and two surgeons,
and provisions for a week.
They carried bedding
and hammocks, the latter for transporting their sick and wounded.
It was a determined and
angry company--a punitive expedition as well as one of relief. They reached the
sight of the skirmish of the previous expedition shortly after noon, for they
were now traveling a known trail and no time was lost in exploring.
From there on the
elephant-track led straight to Mbonga's village. It was but two o'clock when
the head of the column halted upon the edge of the clearing.
Lieutenant Charpentier,
who was in command, immediately sent a portion of his force through the jungle
to the opposite side of the village. Another detachment was dispatched to a
point before the village gate, while he remained with the balance upon the
south side of the clearing.
It was arranged that
the party which was to take its position to the north, and which would be the
last to gain its station should commence the assault, and that their opening
volley should be the signal for a concerted rush from all sides in an attempt
to carry the village by storm at the first charge.
For half an hour the
men with Lieutenant Charpentier crouched in the dense foliage of the jungle,
waiting the signal. To them it seemed like hours. They could see natives in the
fields, and others moving in and out of the village gate.
At length the signal
came--a sharp rattle of musketry, and like one man, an answering volley tore
from the jungle to the west and to the south.
The natives in the
field dropped their implements and broke madly for the palisade. The French
bullets mowed them down, and the French sailors bounded over their prostrate
bodies straight for the village gate.
So sudden and
unexpected the assault had been that the whites reached the gates before the
frightened natives could bar them, and in another minute the village street was
filled with armed men fighting hand to hand in an inextricable tangle.
For a few moments the
blacks held their ground within the entrance to the street, but the revolvers,
rifles and cutlasses of the Frenchmen crumpled the native spearmen and struck
down the black archers with their bows halfdrawn.
Soon the battle turned
to a wild rout, and then to a grim massacre; for the French sailors had seen
bits of D'Arnot's uniform upon several of the black warriors who opposed them.
They spared the
children and those of the women whom they were not forced to kill in
self-defense, but when at length they stopped, parting, blood covered and
sweating, it was because there lived to oppose them no single warrior of all
the savage village of Mbonga.
Carefully they
ransacked every hut and corner of the village, but no sign of D'Arnot could
they find. They questioned the prisoners by signs, and finally one of the
sailors who had served in the French Congo found that he could make them
understand the bastard tongue that passes for language between the whites and
the more degraded tribes of the coast, but even then they could learn nothing
definite regarding the fate of D'Arnot.
Only excited gestures
and expressions of fear could they obtain in response to their inquiries
concerning their fellow; and at last they became convinced that these were but
evidences of the guilt of these demons who had slaughtered and eaten their
comrade two nights before.
At length all hope left
them, and they prepared to camp for the night within the village. The prisoners
were herded into three huts where they were heavily guarded. Sentries were
posted at the barred gates, and finally the village was wrapped in the silence
of slumber, except for the wailing of the native women for their dead.
The next morning they
set out upon the return march. Their original intention had been to burn the
village, but this idea was abandoned and the prisoners were left behind,
weeping and moaning, but with roofs to cover them and a palisade for refuge
from the beasts of the jungle.
Slowly the expedition
retraced its steps of the preceding day. Ten loaded hammocks retarded its pace.
In eight of them lay the more seriously wounded, while two swung beneath the
weight of the dead.
Clayton and Lieutenant
Charpentier brought up the rear of the column; the Englishman silent in respect
for the other's grief, for D'Arnot and Charpentier had been inseparable friends
since boyhood.
Clayton could not but
realize that the Frenchman felt his grief the more keenly because D'Arnot's
sacrifice had been so futile, since Jane had been rescued before D'Arnot had
fallen into the hands of the savages, and again because the service in which he
had lost his life had been outside his duty and for strangers and aliens; but
when he spoke of it to Lieutenant Charpentier, the latter shook his head.
“No, Monsieur,” he
said, “D'Arnot would have chosen to die thus. I only grieve that I could not
have died for him, or at least with him. I wish that you could have known him
better, Monsieur. He was indeed an officer and a gentleman--a title conferred
on many, but deserved by so few.
“He did not die
futilely, for his death in the cause of a strange American girl will make us,
his comrades, face our ends the more bravely, however they may come to us.”
Clayton did not reply,
but within him rose a new respect for Frenchmen which remained undimmed ever
after.
It was quite late when
they reached the cabin by the beach. A single shot before they emerged from the
jungle had announced to those in camp as well as on the ship that the
expedition had been too late--for it had been prearranged that when they came
within a mile or two of camp one shot was to be fired to denote failure, or
three for success, while two would have indicated that they had found no sign
of either D'Arnot or his black captors.
So it was a solemn
party that awaited their coming, and few words were spoken as the dead and
wounded men were tenderly placed in boats and rowed silently toward the
cruiser.
Clayton, exhausted from
his five days of laborious marching through the jungle and from the effects of
his two battles with the blacks, turned toward the cabin to seek a mouthful of
food and then the comparative ease of his bed of grasses after two nights in
the jungle.
By the cabin door stood
Jane.
“The poor lieutenant?”
she asked. “Did you find no trace of him?”
“We were too late, Miss
Porter,” he replied sadly.
“Tell me. What had
happened?” she asked.
“I cannot, Miss Porter,
it is too horrible.”
“You do not mean that
they had tortured him?” she whispered.
“We do not know what
they did to him before they killed him,” he answered, his face drawn with
fatigue and the sorrow he felt for poor D'Arnot and he emphasized the word
before.
“Before they killed
him! What do you mean? They are not--? They are not--?”
She was thinking of
what Clayton had said of the forest man's probable relationship to this tribe
and she could not frame the awful word.
“Yes, Miss Porter, they
were--cannibals,” he said, almost bitterly, for to him too had suddenly come
the thought of the forest man, and the strange, unaccountable jealousy he had
felt two days before swept over him once more.
And then in sudden
brutality that was as unlike Clayton as courteous consideration is unlike an
ape, he blurted out:
“When your forest god
left you he was doubtless hurrying to the feast.”
He was sorry ere the
words were spoken though he did not know how cruelly they had cut the girl. His
regret was for his baseless disloyalty to one who had saved the lives of every
member of his party, and offered harm to none.
The girl's head went
high.
“There could be but one
suitable reply to your assertion, Mr. Clayton,” she said icily, “and I regret
that I am not a man, that I might make it.” She turned quickly and entered the
cabin.
Clayton was an
Englishman, so the girl had passed quite out of sight before he deduced what
reply a man would have made.
“Upon my word,” he said
ruefully, “she called me a liar. And I fancy I jolly well deserved it,” he
added thoughtfully. “Clayton, my boy, I know you are tired out and unstrung,
but that's no reason why you should make an ass of yourself. You'd better go to
bed.”
But before he did so he
called gently to Jane upon the opposite side of the sailcloth partition, for he
wished to apologize, but he might as well have addressed the Sphinx. Then he
wrote upon a piece of paper and shoved it beneath the partition.
Jane saw the little
note and ignored it, for she was very angry and hurt and mortified, but--she
was a woman, and so eventually she picked it up and read it.
MY DEAR MISS PORTER:
I had no reason to
insinuate what I did. My only excuse is that my nerves must be unstrung--which
is no excuse at all.
Please try and think
that I did not say it. I am very sorry. I would not have hurt you, above all
others in the world. Say that you forgive me.
WM. CECIL CLAYTON.
“He did think it or he
never would have said it,” reasoned the girl, “but it cannot be true--oh, I
know it is not true!”
One sentence in the
letter frightened her: “I would not have hurt you above all others in the
world.”
A week ago that
sentence would have filled her with delight, now it depressed her.
She wished she had
never met Clayton. She was sorry that she had ever seen the forest god. No, she
was glad. And there was that other note she had found in the grass before the
cabin the day after her return from the jungle, the love note signed by Tarzan
of the Apes.
Who could be this new
suitor? If he were another of the wild denizens of this terrible forest what
might he not do to claim her?
“Esmeralda! Wake up,”
she cried.
“You make me so
irritable, sleeping there peacefully when you know perfectly well that the
world is filled with sorrow.”
“Gaberelle!” screamed
Esmeralda, sitting up. “What is it now? A hipponocerous? Where is he, Miss
Jane?”
“Nonsense, Esmeralda,
there is nothing. Go back to sleep. You are bad enough asleep, but you are
infinitely worse awake.”
“Yes honey, but what's
the matter with you, precious? You acts sort of disgranulated this evening.”
“Oh, Esmeralda, I'm
just plain ugly to-night,” said the girl. “Don't pay any attention to
me--that's a dear.”
“Yes, honey; now you go
right to sleep. Your nerves are all on edge. What with all these ripotamuses
and man eating geniuses that Mister Philander been telling about--Lord, it
ain't no wonder we all get nervous prosecution.”
Jane crossed the little
room, laughing, and kissing the faithful woman, bid Esmeralda good night.
When D'Arnot regained
consciousness, he found himself lying upon a bed of soft ferns and grasses
beneath a little “A” shaped shelter of boughs.
At his feet an opening
looked out upon a green sward, and at a little distance beyond was the dense
wall of jungle and forest.
He was very lame and
sore and weak, and as full consciousness returned he felt the sharp torture of
many cruel wounds and the dull aching of every bone and muscle in his body as a
result of the hideous beating he had received.
Even the turning of his
head caused him such excruciating agony that he lay still with closed eyes for
a long time.
He tried to piece out
the details of his adventure prior to the time he lost consciousness to see if
they would explain his present whereabouts--he wondered if he were among
friends or foes.
At length he
recollected the whole hideous scene at the stake, and finally recalled the
strange white figure in whose arms he had sunk into oblivion.
D'Arnot wondered what
fate lay in store for him now. He could neither see nor hear any signs of life
about him.
The incessant hum of
the jungle--the rustling of millions of leaves--the buzz of insects--the voices
of the birds and monkeys seemed blended into a strangely soothing purr, as
though he lay apart, far from the myriad life whose sounds came to him only as
a blurred echo.
At length he fell into
a quiet slumber, nor did he awake again until afternoon.
Once more he
experienced the strange sense of utter bewilderment that had marked his earlier
awakening, but soon he recalled the recent past, and looking through the
opening at his feet he saw the figure of a man squatting on his haunches.
The broad, muscular
back was turned toward him, but, tanned though it was, D'Arnot saw that it was
the back of a white man, and he thanked God.
The Frenchman called
faintly. The man turned, and rising, came toward the shelter. His face was very
handsome--the handsomest, thought D'Arnot, that he had ever seen.
Stooping, he crawled
into the shelter beside the wounded officer, and placed a cool hand upon his
forehead.
D'Arnot spoke to him in
French, but the man only shook his head--sadly, it seemed to the Frenchman.
Then D'Arnot tried
English, but still the man shook his head. Italian, Spanish and German brought
similar discouragement.
D'Arnot knew a few
words of Norwegian, Russian, Greek, and also had a smattering of the language
of one of the West Coast negro tribes--the man denied them all.
After examining
D'Arnot's wounds the man left the shelter and disappeared. In half an hour he
was back with fruit and a hollow gourd-like vegetable filled with water.
D'Arnot drank and ate a
little. He was surprised that he had no fever. Again he tried to converse with
his strange nurse, but the attempt was useless.
Suddenly the man
hastened from the shelter only to return a few minutes later with several
pieces of bark and--wonder of wonders--a lead pencil.
Squatting beside
D'Arnot he wrote for a minute on the smooth inner surface of the bark; then he
handed it to the Frenchman.
D'Arnot was astonished
to see, in plain print-like characters, a message in English:
I am Tarzan of the
Apes. Who are you? Can you read this language?
D'Arnot seized the
pencil--then he stopped. This strange man wrote English--evidently he was an
Englishman.
“Yes,” said D'Arnot, “I
read English. I speak it also. Now we may talk. First let me thank you for all
that you have done for me.”
The man only shook his
head and pointed to the pencil and the bark.
“Mon Dieu!” cried
D'Arnot. “If you are English why is it then that you cannot speak English?”
And then in a flash it
came to him--the man was a mute, possibly a deaf mute.
So D'Arnot wrote a message
on the bark, in English.
I am Paul d'Arnot,
Lieutenant in the navy of France. I thank you for what you have done for me.
You have saved my life, and all that I have is yours. May I ask how it is that
one who writes English does not speak it?
Tarzan's reply filled
D'Arnot with still greater wonder:
I speak only the
language of my tribe--the great apes who were Kerchak's; and a little of the
languages of Tantor, the elephant, and Numa, the lion, and of the other folks
of the jungle I understand. With a human being I have never spoken, except once
with Jane Porter, by signs. This is the first time I have spoken with another
of my kind through written words.
D'Arnot was mystified.
It seemed incredible that there lived upon earth a full-grown man who had never
spoken with a fellow man, and still more preposterous that such a one could
read and write.
He looked again at
Tarzan's message--“except once, with Jane Porter.” That was the American girl
who had been carried into the jungle by a gorilla.
A sudden light
commenced to dawn on D'Arnot--this then was the “gorilla.” He seized the pencil
and wrote:
Where is Jane Porter?
And Tarzan replied,
below:
Back with her people in
the cabin of Tarzan of the Apes.
She is not dead then?
Where was she? What happened to her?
She is not dead. She
was taken by Terkoz to be his wife; but Tarzan of the Apes took her away from
Terkoz and killed him before he could harm her.
None in all the jungle
may face Tarzan of the Apes in battle, and live. I am Tarzan of the
Apes--mighty fighter.
D'Arnot wrote:
I am glad she is safe.
It pains me to write, I will rest a while.
And then Tarzan:
Yes, rest. When you are
well I shall take you back to your people.
For many days D'Arnot
lay upon his bed of soft ferns. The second day a fever had come and D'Arnot
thought that it meant infection and he knew that he would die.
An idea came to him. He
wondered why he had not thought of it before.
He called Tarzan and
indicated by signs that he would write, and when Tarzan had fetched the bark
and pencil, D'Arnot wrote:
Can you go to my people
and lead them here? I will write a message that you may take to them, and they
will follow you.
Tarzan shook his head
and taking the bark, wrote:
I had thought of
that--the first day; but I dared not. The great apes come often to this spot,
and if they found you here, wounded and alone, they would kill you.
D'Arnot turned on his
side and closed his eyes. He did not wish to die; but he felt that he was
going, for the fever was mounting higher and higher. That night he lost
consciousness.
For three days he was
in delirium, and Tarzan sat beside him and bathed his head and hands and washed
his wounds.
On the fourth day the
fever broke as suddenly as it had come, but it left D'Arnot a shadow of his
former self, and very weak. Tarzan had to lift him that he might drink from the
gourd.
The fever had not been
the result of infection, as D'Arnot had thought, but one of those that commonly
attack whites in the jungles of Africa, and either kill or leave them as
suddenly as D'Arnot's had left him.
Two days later, D'Arnot
was tottering about the amphitheater, Tarzan's strong arm about him to keep him
from falling.
They sat beneath the
shade of a great tree, and Tarzan found some smooth bark that they might
converse.
D'Arnot wrote the first
message:
What can I do to repay
you for all that you have done for me?
And Tarzan, in reply:
Teach me to speak the
language of men.
And so D'Arnot
commenced at once, pointing out familiar objects and repeating their names in
French, for he thought that it would be easier to teach this man his own
language, since he understood it himself best of all.
It meant nothing to
Tarzan, of course, for he could not tell one language from another, so when he
pointed to the word man which he had printed upon a piece of bark he learned
from D'Arnot that it was pronounced homme, and in the same way he was taught to
pronounce ape, singe and tree, arbre.
He was a most eager
student, and in two more days had mastered so much French that he could speak
little sentences such as: “That is a tree,” “this is grass,” “I am hungry,” and
the like, but D'Arnot found that it was difficult to teach him the French
construction upon a foundation of English.
The Frenchman wrote
little lessons for him in English and had Tarzan repeat them in French, but as
a literal translation was usually very poor French Tarzan was often confused.
D'Arnot realized now
that he had made a mistake, but it seemed too late to go back and do it all
over again and force Tarzan to unlearn all that he had learned, especially as
they were rapidly approaching a point where they would be able to converse.
On the third day after
the fever broke Tarzan wrote a message asking D'Arnot if he felt strong enough
to be carried back to the cabin. Tarzan was as anxious to go as D'Arnot, for he
longed to see Jane again.
It had been hard for
him to remain with the Frenchman all these days for that very reason, and that
he had unselfishly done so spoke more glowingly of his nobility of character
than even did his rescuing the French officer from Mbonga's clutches.
D'Arnot, only too
willing to attempt the journey, wrote:
But you cannot carry me
all the distance through this tangled forest.
Tarzan laughed.
“Mais oui,” he said,
and D'Arnot laughed aloud to hear the phrase that he used so often glide from
Tarzan's tongue.
So they set out,
D'Arnot marveling as had Clayton and Jane at the wondrous strength and agility
of the apeman.
Mid-afternoon brought
them to the clearing, and as Tarzan dropped to earth from the branches of the
last tree his heart leaped and bounded against his ribs in anticipation of
seeing Jane so soon again.
No one was in sight
outside the cabin, and D'Arnot was perplexed to note that neither the cruiser
nor the Arrow was at anchor in the bay.
An atmosphere of
loneliness pervaded the spot, which caught suddenly at both men as they strode
toward the cabin.
Neither spoke, yet both
knew before they opened the closed door what they would find beyond.
Tarzan lifted the latch
and pushed the great door in upon its wooden hinges. It was as they had feared.
The cabin was deserted.
The men turned and
looked at one another. D'Arnot knew that his people thought him dead; but
Tarzan thought only of the woman who had kissed him in love and now had fled
from him while he was serving one of her people.
A great bitterness rose
in his heart. He would go away, far into the jungle and join his tribe. Never
would he see one of his own kind again, nor could he bear the thought of
returning to the cabin. He would leave that forever behind him with the great
hopes he had nursed there of finding his own race and becoming a man among men.
And the Frenchman?
D'Arnot? What of him? He could get along as Tarzan had. Tarzan did not want to
see him more. He wanted to get away from everything that might remind him of
Jane.
As Tarzan stood upon
the threshold brooding, D'Arnot had entered the cabin. Many comforts he saw
that had been left behind. He recognized numerous articles from the cruiser --a
camp oven, some kitchen utensils, a rifle and many rounds of ammunition, canned
foods, blankets, two chairs and a cot--and several books and periodicals,
mostly American.
“They must intend
returning,” thought D'Arnot.
He walked over to the
table that John Clayton had built so many years before to serve as a desk, and
on it he saw two notes addressed to Tarzan of the Apes.
One was in a strong
masculine hand and was unsealed. The other, in a woman's hand, was sealed.
“Here are two messages
for you, Tarzan of the Apes,” cried D'Arnot, turning toward the door; but his
companion was not there.
D'Arnot walked to the
door and looked out. Tarzan was nowhere in sight. He called aloud but there was
no response.
“Mon Dieu!” exclaimed
D'Arnot, “he has left me. I feel it. He has gone back into his jungle and left
me here alone.”
And then he remembered
the look on Tarzan's face when they had discovered that the cabin was
empty--such a look as the hunter sees in the eyes of the wounded deer he has
wantonly brought down.
The man had been hard
hit--D'Arnot realized it now-- but why? He could not understand.
The Frenchman looked
about him. The loneliness and the horror of the place commenced to get on his
nerves--already weakened by the ordeal of suffering and sickness he had passed
through.
To be left here alone
beside this awful jungle--never to hear a human voice or see a human face--in
constant dread of savage beasts and more terribly savage men--a prey to
solitude and hopelessness. It was awful.
And far to the east
Tarzan of the Apes was speeding through the middle terrace back to his tribe.
Never had he traveled with such reckless speed. He felt that he was running
away from himself--that by hurtling through the forest like a frightened
squirrel he was escaping from his own thoughts. But no matter how fast he went
he found them always with him.
He passed above the
sinuous body of Sabor, the lioness, going in the opposite direction--toward the
cabin, thought Tarzan.
What could D'Arnot do
against Sabor--or if Bolgani, the gorilla, should come upon him--or Numa, the
lion, or cruel Sheeta?
Tarzan paused in his
flight.
“What are you, Tarzan?”
he asked aloud. “An ape or a man?”
“If you are an ape you
will do as the apes would do-- leave one of your kind to die in the jungle if
it suited your whim to go elsewhere.
“If you are a man, you
will return to protect your kind. You will not run away from one of your own
people, because one of them has run away from you.”
D'Arnot closed the
cabin door. He was very nervous. Even brave men, and D'Arnot was a brave man,
are sometimes frightened by solitude.
He loaded one of the
rifles and placed it within easy reach. Then he went to the desk and took up
the unsealed letter addressed to Tarzan.
Possibly it contained
word that his people had but left the beach temporarily. He felt that it would
be no breach of ethics to read this letter, so he took the enclosure from the
envelope and read:
TO TARZAN OF THE APES:
We thank you for the
use of your cabin, and are sorry that you did not permit us the pleasure of
seeing and thanking you in person.
We have harmed nothing,
but have left many things for you which may add to your comfort and safety here
in your lonely home.
If you know the strange
white man who saved our lives so many times, and brought us food, and if you
can converse with him, thank him, also, for his kindness.
We sail within the
hour, never to return; but we wish you and that other jungle friend to know
that we shall always thank you for what you did for strangers on your shore,
and that we should have done infinitely more to reward you both had you given
us the opportunity.
Very respectfully, Wm.
Cecil Clayton.
“‘Never to return,’”
muttered D'Arnot, and threw himself face downward upon the cot.
An hour later he
started up listening. Something was at the door trying to enter.
D'Arnot reached for the
loaded rifle and placed it to his shoulder.
Dusk was falling, and
the interior of the cabin was very dark; but the man could see the latch moving
from its place.
He felt his hair rising
upon his scalp.
Gently the door opened
until a thin crack showed something standing just beyond.
D'Arnot sighted along
the blue barrel at the crack of the door--and then he pulled the trigger.
When the expedition
returned, following their fruitless endeavor to succor D'Arnot, Captain
Dufranne was anxious to steam away as quickly as possible, and all save Jane
had acquiesced.
“No,” she said,
determinedly, “I shall not go, nor should you, for there are two friends in
that jungle who will come out of it some day expecting to find us awaiting
them.
“Your officer, Captain
Dufranne, is one of them, and the forest man who has saved the lives of every
member of my father's party is the other.
“He left me at the edge
of the jungle two days ago to hasten to the aid of my father and Mr. Clayton,
as he thought, and he has stayed to rescue Lieutenant D'Arnot; of that you may
be sure.
“Had he been too late
to be of service to the lieutenant he would have been back before now--the fact
that he is not back is sufficient proof to me that he is delayed because
Lieutenant D'Arnot is wounded, or he has had to follow his captors further than
the village which your sailors attacked.”
“But poor D'Arnot's
uniform and all his belongings were found in that village, Miss Porter,” argued
the captain, “and the natives showed great excitement when questioned as to the
white man's fate.”
“Yes, Captain, but they
did not admit that he was dead and as for his clothes and accouterments being
in their possession--why more civilized peoples than these poor savage negroes
strip their prisoners of every article of value whether they intend killing
them or not.
“Even the soldiers of
my own dear South looted not only the living but the dead. It is strong
circumstantial evidence, I will admit, but it is not positive proof.”
“Possibly your forest
man, himself was captured or killed by the savages,” suggested Captain
Dufranne.
The girl laughed.
“You do not know him,”
she replied, a little thrill of pride setting her nerves a-tingle at the
thought that she spoke of her own.
“I admit that he would
be worth waiting for, this superman of yours,” laughed the captain. “I most
certainly should like to see him.”
“Then wait for him, my
dear captain,” urged the girl, “for I intend doing so.”
The Frenchman would
have been a very much surprised man could he have interpreted the true meaning
of the girl's words.
They had been walking
from the beach toward the cabin as they talked, and now they joined a little
group sitting on camp stools in the shade of a great tree beside the cabin.
Professor Porter was
there, and Mr. Philander and Clayton, with Lieutenant Charpentier and two of
his brother officers, while Esmeralda hovered in the background, ever and anon
venturing opinions and comments with the freedom of an old and much-indulged
family servant.
The officers arose and
saluted as their superior approached, and Clayton surrendered his camp stool to
Jane.
“We were just
discussing poor Paul's fate,” said Captain Dufranne. “Miss Porter insists that
we have no absolute proof of his death--nor have we. And on the other hand she
maintains that the continued absence of your omnipotent jungle friend indicates
that D'Arnot is still in need of his services, either because he is wounded, or
still is a prisoner in a more distant native village.”
“It has been suggested,”
ventured Lieutenant Charpentier, “that the wild man may have been a member of
the tribe of blacks who attacked our party--that he was hastening to aid
them--his own people.”
Jane shot a quick
glance at Clayton.
“It seems vastly more
reasonable,” said Professor Porter.
“I do not agree with
you,” objected Mr. Philander. “He had ample opportunity to harm us himself, or
to lead his people against us. Instead, during our long residence here, he has
been uniformly consistent in his role of protector and provider.”
“That is true,”
interjected Clayton, “yet we must not overlook the fact that except for himself
the only human beings within hundreds of miles are savage cannibals. He was
armed precisely as are they, which indicates that he has maintained relations
of some nature with them, and the fact that he is but one against possibly
thousands suggests that these relations could scarcely have been other than
friendly.”
“It seems improbable
then that he is not connected with them,” remarked the captain; “possibly a
member of this tribe.”
“Otherwise,” added
another of the officers, “how could he have lived a sufficient length of time
among the savage denizens of the jungle, brute and human, to have become
proficient in woodcraft, or in the use of African weapons.”
“You are judging him
according to your own standards, gentlemen,” said Jane. “An ordinary white man
such as any of you--pardon me, I did not mean just that--rather, a white man
above the ordinary in physique and intelligence could never, I grant you, have
lived a year alone and naked in this tropical jungle; but this man not only
surpasses the average white man in strength and agility, but as far transcends
our trained athletes and ‘strong men’ as they surpass a day-old babe; and his
courage and ferocity in battle are those of the wild beast.”
“He has certainly won a
loyal champion, Miss Porter,” said Captain Dufranne, laughing. “I am sure that
there be none of us here but would willingly face death a hundred times in its
most terrifying forms to deserve the tributes of one even half so loyal--or so
beautiful.”
“You would not wonder
that I defend him,” said the girl, “could you have seen him as I saw him,
battling in my behalf with that huge hairy brute.
“Could you have seen
him charge the monster as a bull might charge a grizzly--absolutely without
sign of fear or hesitation--you would have believed him more than human.
“Could you have seen
those mighty muscles knotting under the brown skin--could you have seen them
force back those awful fangs--you too would have thought him invincible.
“And could you have seen
the chivalrous treatment which he accorded a strange girl of a strange race,
you would feel the same absolute confidence in him that I feel.”
“You have won your
suit, my fair pleader,” cried the captain. “This court finds the defendant not
guilty, and the cruiser shall wait a few days longer that he may have an
opportunity to come and thank the divine Portia.”
“For the Lord's sake
honey,” cried Esmeralda. “You all don't mean to tell me that you're going to
stay right here in this here land of carnivable animals when you all got the
opportunity to escapade on that boat? Don't you tell me that, honey.”
“Why, Esmeralda! You
should be ashamed of yourself,” cried Jane. “Is this any way to show your
gratitude to the man who saved your life twice?”
“Well, Miss Jane,
that's all jest as you say; but that there forest man never did save us to stay
here. He done save us so we all could get away from here. I expect he be mighty
peevish when he find we ain't got no more sense than to stay right here after
he done give us the chance to get away.
“I hoped I'd never have
to sleep in this here geological garden another night and listen to all them
lonesome noises that come out of that jumble after dark.”
“I don't blame you a
bit, Esmeralda,” said Clayton, “and you certainly did hit it off right when you
called them ‘lonesome’ noises. I never have been able to find the right word
for them but that's it, don't you know, lonesome noises.”
“You and Esmeralda had
better go and live on the cruiser,” said Jane, in fine scorn. “What would you
think if you had to live all of your life in that jungle as our forest man has
done?”
“I'm afraid I'd be a
blooming bounder as a wild man,” laughed Clayton, ruefully. “Those noises at
night make the hair on my head bristle. I suppose that I should be ashamed to
admit it, but it's the truth.”
“I don't know about
that,” said Lieutenant Charpentier. “I never thought much about fear and that
sort of thing--never tried to determine whether I was a coward or brave man;
but the other night as we lay in the jungle there after poor D'Arnot was taken,
and those jungle noises rose and fell around us I began to think that I was a
coward indeed. It was not the roaring and growling of the big beasts that
affected me so much as it was the stealthy noises--the ones that you heard
suddenly close by and then listened vainly for a repetition of--the
unaccountable sounds as of a great body moving almost noiselessly, and the
knowledge that you didn't know how close it was, or whether it were creeping
closer after you ceased to hear it? It was those noises--and the eyes.
“Mon Dieu! I shall see
them in the dark forever--the eyes that you see, and those that you don't see,
but feel--ah, they are the worst.”
All were silent for a
moment, and then Jane spoke.
“And he is out there,”
she said, in an awe-hushed whisper. “Those eyes will be glaring at him
to-night, and at your comrade Lieutenant D'Arnot. Can you leave them,
gentlemen, without at least rendering them the passive succor which remaining
here a few days longer might insure them?”
“Tut, tut, child,” said
Professor Porter. “Captain Dufranne is willing to remain, and for my part I am
perfectly willing, perfectly willing--as I always have been to humor your
childish whims.”
“We can utilize the
morrow in recovering the chest, Professor,” suggested Mr. Philander.
“Quite so, quite so,
Mr. Philander, I had almost forgotten the treasure,” exclaimed Professor
Porter. “Possibly we can borrow some men from Captain Dufranne to assist us,
and one of the prisoners to point out the location of the chest.”
“Most assuredly, my
dear Professor, we are all yours to command,” said the captain.
And so it was arranged
that on the next day Lieutenant Charpentier was to take a detail of ten men,
and one of the mutineers of the Arrow as a guide, and unearth the treasure; and
that the cruiser would remain for a full week in the little harbor. At the end
of that time it was to be assumed that D'Arnot was truly dead, and that the
forest man would not return while they remained. Then the two vessels were to
leave with all the party.
Professor Porter did
not accompany the treasure-seekers on the following day, but when he saw them
returning empty-handed toward noon, he hastened forward to meet them --his
usual preoccupied indifference entirely vanished, and in its place a nervous
and excited manner.
“Where is the treasure?”
he cried to Clayton, while yet a hundred feet separated them.
Clayton shook his head.
“Gone,” he said, as he
neared the professor.
“Gone! It cannot be.
Who could have taken it?” cried Professor Porter.
“God only knows,
Professor,” replied Clayton. “We might have thought the fellow who guided us
was lying about the location, but his surprise and consternation on finding no
chest beneath the body of the murdered Snipes were too real to be feigned. And
then our spades showed us that something had been buried beneath the corpse,
for a hole had been there and it had been filled with loose earth.”
“But who could have
taken it?” repeated Professor Porter.
“Suspicion might
naturally fall on the men of the cruiser,” said Lieutenant Charpentier, “but
for the fact that sub-lieutenant Janviers here assures me that no men have had
shore leave--that none has been on shore since we anchored here except under
command of an officer. I do not know that you would suspect our men, but I am
glad that there is now no chance for suspicion to fall on them,” he concluded.
“It would never have
occurred to me to suspect the men to whom we owe so much,” replied Professor
Porter, graciously. “I would as soon suspect my dear Clayton here, or Mr.
Philander.”
The Frenchmen smiled,
both officers and sailors. It was plain to see that a burden had been lifted
from their minds.
“The treasure has been
gone for some time,” continued Clayton. “In fact the body fell apart as we
lifted it, which indicates that whoever removed the treasure did so while the
corpse was still fresh, for it was intact when we first uncovered it.”
“There must have been
several in the party,” said Jane, who had joined them. “You remember that it
took four men to carry it.”
“By jove!” cried
Clayton. “That's right. It must have been done by a party of blacks. Probably
one of them saw the men bury the chest and then returned immediately after with
a party of his friends, and carried it off.”
“Speculation is futile,”
said Professor Porter sadly. “The chest is gone. We shall never see it again,
nor the treasure that was in it.”
Only Jane knew what the
loss meant to her father, and none there knew what it meant to her.
Six days later Captain
Dufranne announced that they would sail early on the morrow.
Jane would have begged
for a further reprieve, had it not been that she too had begun to believe that
her forest lover would return no more.
In spite of herself she
began to entertain doubts and fears. The reasonableness of the arguments of
these disinterested French officers commenced to convince her against her will.
That he was a cannibal
she would not believe, but that he was an adopted member of some savage tribe
at length seemed possible to her.
She would not admit
that he could be dead. It was impossible to believe that that perfect body, so
filled with triumphant life, could ever cease to harbor the vital spark--as
soon believe that immortality were dust.
As Jane permitted
herself to harbor these thoughts, others equally unwelcome forced themselves
upon her.
If he belonged to some
savage tribe he had a savage wife --a dozen of them perhaps--and wild,
half-caste children. The girl shuddered, and when they told her that the
cruiser would sail on the morrow she was almost glad.
It was she, though, who
suggested that arms, ammunition, supplies and comforts be left behind in the
cabin, ostensibly for that intangible personality who had signed himself Tarzan
of the Apes, and for D'Arnot should he still be living, but really, she hoped,
for her forest god--even though his feet should prove of clay.
And at the last minute
she left a message for him, to be transmitted by Tarzan of the Apes.
She was the last to
leave the cabin, returning on some trivial pretext after the others had started
for the boat.
She kneeled down beside
the bed in which she had spent so many nights, and offered up a prayer for the
safety of her primeval man, and crushing his locket to her lips she murmured:
“I love you, and
because I love you I believe in you. But if I did not believe, still should I
love. Had you come back for me, and had there been no other way, I would have
gone into the jungle with you--forever.”
With the report of his
gun D'Arnot saw the door fly open and the figure of a man pitch headlong within
onto the cabin floor.
The Frenchman in his
panic raised his gun to fire again into the prostrate form, but suddenly in the
half dusk of the open door he saw that the man was white and in another instant
realized that he had shot his friend and protector, Tarzan of the Apes.
With a cry of anguish
D'Arnot sprang to the ape-man's side, and kneeling, lifted the latter's head in
his arms--calling Tarzan's name aloud.
There was no response,
and then D'Arnot placed his ear above the man's heart. To his joy he heard its
steady beating beneath.
Carefully he lifted
Tarzan to the cot, and then, after closing and bolting the door, he lighted one
of the lamps and examined the wound.
The bullet had struck a
glancing blow upon the skull. There was an ugly flesh wound, but no signs of a fracture
of the skull.
D'Arnot breathed a sigh
of relief, and went about bathing the blood from Tarzan's face.
Soon the cool water
revived him, and presently he opened his eyes to look in questioning surprise
at D'Arnot.
The latter had bound
the wound with pieces of cloth, and as he saw that Tarzan had regained
consciousness he arose and going to the table wrote a message, which he handed
to the ape-man, explaining the terrible mistake he had made and how thankful he
was that the wound was not more serious.
Tarzan, after reading
the message, sat on the edge of the couch and laughed.
“It is nothing,” he
said in French, and then, his vocabulary failing him, he wrote:
You should have seen
what Bolgani did to me, and Kerchak, and Terkoz, before I killed them--then you
would laugh at such a little scratch.
D'Arnot handed Tarzan
the two messages that had been left for him.
Tarzan read the first
one through with a look of sorrow on his face. The second one he turned over
and over, searching for an opening--he had never seen a sealed envelope before.
At length he handed it to D'Arnot.
The Frenchman had been
watching him, and knew that Tarzan was puzzled over the envelope. How strange
it seemed that to a full-grown white man an envelope was a mystery. D'Arnot
opened it and handed the letter back to Tarzan.
Sitting on a camp stool
the ape-man spread the written sheet before him and read:
TO TARZAN OF THE APES:
Before I leave let me
add my thanks to those of Mr. Clayton for the kindness you have shown in
permitting us the use of your cabin.
That you never came to
make friends with us has been a great regret to us. We should have liked so
much to have seen and thanked our host.
There is another I
should like to thank also, but he did not come back, though I cannot believe
that he is dead.
I do not know his name.
He is the great white giant who wore the diamond locket upon his breast.
If you know him and can
speak his language carry my thanks to him, and tell him that I waited seven
days for him to return.
Tell him, also, that in
my home in America, in the city of Baltimore, there will always be a welcome
for him if he cares to come.
I found a note you
wrote me lying among the leaves beneath a tree near the cabin. I do not know
how you learned to love me, who have never spoken to me, and I am very sorry if
it is true, for I have already given my heart to another.
But know that I am
always your friend,
JANE PORTER.
Tarzan sat with gaze
fixed upon the floor for nearly an hour. It was evident to him from the notes
that they did not know that he and Tarzan of the Apes were one and the same.
“I have given my heart
to another,” he repeated over and over again to himself.
Then she did not love
him! How could she have pretended love, and raised him to such a pinnacle of
hope only to cast him down to such utter depths of despair!
Maybe her kisses were
only signs of friendship. How did he know, who knew nothing of the customs of
human beings?
Suddenly he arose, and,
bidding D'Arnot good night as he had learned to do, threw himself upon the
couch of ferns that had been Jane Porter's.
D'Arnot extinguished
the lamp, and lay down upon the cot.
For a week they did
little but rest, D'Arnot coaching Tarzan in French. At the end of that time the
two men could converse quite easily.
One night, as they were
sitting within the cabin before retiring, Tarzan turned to D'Arnot.
“Where is America?” he
said.
D'Arnot pointed toward
the northwest.
“Many thousands of
miles across the ocean,” he replied. “Why?”
“I am going there.”
D'Arnot shook his head.
“It is impossible, my
friend,” he said.
Tarzan rose, and, going
to one of the cupboards, returned with a well-thumbed geography.
Turning to a map of the
world, he said:
“I have never quite
understood all this; explain it to me, please.”
When D'Arnot had done
so, showing him that the blue represented all the water on the earth, and the
bits of other colors the continents and islands, Tarzan asked him to point out
the spot where they now were.
D'Arnot did so.
“Now point out America,”
said Tarzan.
And as D'Arnot placed
his finger upon North America, Tarzan smiled and laid his palm upon the page,
spanning the great ocean that lay between the two continents.
“You see it is not so
very far,” he said; “scarce the width of my hand.”
D'Arnot laughed. How
could he make the man understand?
Then he took a pencil
and made a tiny point upon the shore of Africa.
“This little mark,” he
said, “is many times larger upon this map than your cabin is upon the earth. Do
you see now how very far it is?”
Tarzan thought for a
long time.
“Do any white men live
in Africa?” he asked.
“Yes.”
“Where are the nearest?”
D'Arnot pointed out a
spot on the shore just north of them.
“So close?” asked
Tarzan, in surprise.
“Yes,” said D'Arnot; “but
it is not close.”
“Have they big boats to
cross the ocean?”
“Yes.”
“We shall go there
to-morrow,” announced Tarzan.
Again D'Arnot smiled
and shook his head.
“It is too far. We
should die long before we reached them.”
“Do you wish to stay
here then forever?” asked Tarzan.
“No,” said D'Arnot.
“Then we shall start
to-morrow. I do not like it here longer. I should rather die than remain here.”
“Well,” answered
D'Arnot, with a shrug, “I do not know, my friend, but that I also would rather
die than remain here. If you go, I shall go with you.”
“It is settled then,”
said Tarzan. “I shall start for America to-morrow.”
“How will you get to
America without money?” asked D'Arnot.
“What is money?”
inquired Tarzan.
It took a long time to
make him understand even imperfectly.
“How do men get money?”
he asked at last.
“They work for it.”
“Very well. I will work
for it, then.”
“No, my friend,”
returned D'Arnot, “you need not worry about money, nor need you work for it. I
have enough money for two--enough for twenty. Much more than is good for one
man and you shall have all you need if ever we reach civilization.”
So on the following day
they started north along the shore. Each man carrying a rifle and ammunition,
beside bedding and some food and cooking utensils.
The latter seemed to
Tarzan a most useless encumbrance, so he threw his away.
“But you must learn to
eat cooked food, my friend,” remonstrated D'Arnot. “No civilized men eat raw
flesh.”
“There will be time
enough when I reach civilization,” said Tarzan. “I do not like the things and
they only spoil the taste of good meat.”
For a month they
traveled north. Sometimes finding food in plenty and again going hungry for
days.
They saw no signs of
natives nor were they molested by wild beasts. Their journey was a miracle of
ease.
Tarzan asked questions
and learned rapidly. D'Arnot taught him many of the refinements of
civilization--even to the use of knife and fork; but sometimes Tarzan would
drop them in disgust and grasp his food in his strong brown hands, tearing it
with his molars like a wild beast.
Then D'Arnot would
expostulate with him, saying:
“You must not eat like
a brute, Tarzan, while I am trying to make a gentleman of you. Mon Dieu!
Gentlemen do not thus--it is terrible.”
Tarzan would grin
sheepishly and pick up his knife and fork again, but at heart he hated them.
On the journey he told
D'Arnot about the great chest he had seen the sailors bury; of how he had dug
it up and carried it to the gathering place of the apes and buried it there.
“It must be the
treasure chest of Professor Porter,” said D'Arnot. “It is too bad, but of
course you did not know.”
Then Tarzan recalled
the letter written by Jane to her friend--the one he had stolen when they first
came to his cabin, and now he knew what was in the chest and what it meant to
Jane.
“To-morrow we shall go
back after it,” he announced to D'Arnot.
“Go back?” exclaimed
D'Arnot. “But, my dear fellow, we have now been three weeks upon the march. It
would require three more to return to the treasure, and then, with that
enormous weight which required, you say, four sailors to carry, it would be
months before we had again reached this spot.”
“It must be done, my
friend,” insisted Tarzan. “You may go on toward civilization, and I will return
for the treasure. I can go very much faster alone.”
“I have a better plan,
Tarzan,” exclaimed D'Arnot. “We shall go on together to the nearest settlement,
and there we will charter a boat and sail back down the coast for the treasure
and so transport it easily. That will be safer and quicker and also not require
us to be separated. What do you think of that plan?”
“Very well,” said
Tarzan. “The treasure will be there whenever we go for it; and while I could
fetch it now, and catch up with you in a moon or two, I shall feel safer for
you to know that you are not alone on the trail. When I see how helpless you
are, D'Arnot, I often wonder how the human race has escaped annihilation all
these ages which you tell me about. Why, Sabor, single handed, could
exterminate a thousand of you.”
D'Arnot laughed.
“You will think more
highly of your genus when you have seen its armies and navies, its great
cities, and its mighty engineering works. Then you will realize that it is
mind, and not muscle, that makes the human animal greater than the mighty
beasts of your jungle.
“Alone and unarmed, a
single man is no match for any of the larger beasts; but if ten men were
together, they would combine their wits and their muscles against their savage
enemies, while the beasts, being unable to reason, would never think of
combining against the men. Otherwise, Tarzan of the Apes, how long would you
have lasted in the savage wilderness?”
“You are right,
D'Arnot,” replied Tarzan, “for if Kerchak had come to Tublat's aid that night
at the Dum-Dum, there would have been an end of me. But Kerchak could never
think far enough ahead to take advantage of any such opportunity. Even Kala, my
mother, could never plan ahead. She simply ate what she needed when she needed
it, and if the supply was very scarce, even though she found plenty for several
meals, she would never gather any ahead.
“I remember that she
used to think it very silly of me to burden myself with extra food upon the
march, though she was quite glad to eat it with me, if the way chanced to be
barren of sustenance.”
“Then you knew your
mother, Tarzan?” asked D'Arnot, in surprise.
“Yes. She was a great,
fine ape, larger than I, and weighing twice as much.”
“And your father?”
asked D'Arnot.
“I did not know him.
Kala told me he was a white ape, and hairless like myself. I know now that he
must have been a white man.”
D'Arnot looked long and
earnestly at his companion.
“Tarzan,” he said at
length, “it is impossible that the ape, Kala, was your mother. If such a thing
can be, which I doubt, you would have inherited some of the characteristics of
the ape, but you have not--you are pure man, and, I should say, the offspring
of highly bred and intelligent parents. Have you not the slightest clue to your
past?”
“Not the slightest,”
replied Tarzan.
“No writings in the
cabin that might have told something of the lives of its original inmates?”
“I have read everything
that was in the cabin with the exception of one book which I know now to be
written in a language other than English. Possibly you can read it.”
Tarzan fished the
little black diary from the bottom of his quiver, and handed it to his
companion.
D'Arnot glanced at the
title page.
“It is the diary of
John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, an English nobleman, and it is written in French,”
he said.
Then he proceeded to
read the diary that had been written over twenty years before, and which
recorded the details of the story which we already know--the story of
adventure, hardships and sorrow of John Clayton and his wife Alice, from the
day they left England until an hour before he was struck down by Kerchak.
D'Arnot read aloud. At
times his voice broke, and he was forced to stop reading for the pitiful
hopelessness that spoke between the lines.
Occasionally he glanced
at Tarzan; but the ape-man sat upon his haunches, like a carven image, his eyes
fixed upon the ground.
Only when the little
babe was mentioned did the tone of the diary alter from the habitual note of
despair which had crept into it by degrees after the first two months upon the
shore.
Then the passages were
tinged with a subdued happiness that was even sadder than the rest.
One entry showed an
almost hopeful spirit.
To-day our little boy
is six months old. He is sitting in Alice's lap beside the table where I am
writing--a happy, healthy, perfect child.
Somehow, even against
all reason, I seem to see him a grown man, taking his father's place in the
world--the second John Clayton--and bringing added honors to the house of
Greystoke.
There--as though to
give my prophecy the weight of his endorsement--he has grabbed my pen in his
chubby fists and with his inkbegrimed little fingers has placed the seal of his
tiny finger prints upon the page.
And there, on the
margin of the page, were the partially blurred imprints of four wee fingers and
the outer half of the thumb.
When D'Arnot had
finished the diary the two men sat in silence for some minutes.
“Well! Tarzan of the
Apes, what think you?” asked D'Arnot. “Does not this little book clear up the
mystery of your parentage?
“Why man, you are Lord
Greystoke.”
“The book speaks of but
one child,” he replied. “Its little skeleton lay in the crib, where it died
crying for nourishment, from the first time I entered the cabin until Professor
Porter's party buried it, with its father and mother, beside the cabin.
“No, that was the babe
the book speaks of--and the mystery of my origin is deeper than before, for I
have thought much of late of the possibility of that cabin having been my
birthplace. I am afraid that Kala spoke the truth,” he concluded sadly.
D'Arnot shook his head.
He was unconvinced, and in his mind had sprung the determination to prove the
correctness of his theory, for he had discovered the key which alone could
unlock the mystery, or consign it forever to the realms of the unfathomable.
A week later the two
men came suddenly upon a clearing in the forest.
In the distance were
several buildings surrounded by a strong palisade. Between them and the
enclosure stretched a cultivated field in which a number of negroes were
working.
The two halted at the
edge of the jungle.
Tarzan fitted his bow
with a poisoned arrow, but D'Arnot placed a hand upon his arm.
“What would you do,
Tarzan?” he asked.
“They will try to kill
us if they see us,” replied Tarzan. “I prefer to be the killer.”
“Maybe they are
friends,” suggested D'Arnot.
“They are black,” was
Tarzan's only reply.
And again he drew back
his shaft.
“You must not, Tarzan!”
cried D'Arnot. “White men do not kill wantonly. Mon Dieu! but you have much to
learn.
“I pity the ruffian who
crosses you, my wild man, when I take you to Paris. I will have my hands full
keeping your neck from beneath the guillotine.”
Tarzan lowered his bow
and smiled.
“I do not know why I
should kill the blacks back there in my jungle, yet not kill them here. Suppose
Numa, the lion, should spring out upon us, I should say, then, I presume: Good
morning, Monsieur Numa, how is Madame Numa; eh?”
“Wait until the blacks
spring upon you,” replied D'Arnot, “then you may kill them. Do not assume that
men are your enemies until they prove it.”
“Come,” said Tarzan, “let
us go and present ourselves to be killed,” and he started straight across the
field, his head high held and the tropical sun beating upon his smooth, brown
skin.
Behind him came
D'Arnot, clothed in some garments which had been discarded at the cabin by
Clayton when the officers of the French cruiser had fitted him out in more
presentable fashion.
Presently one of the
blacks looked up, and beholding Tarzan, turned, shrieking, toward the palisade.
In an instant the air
was filled with cries of terror from the fleeing gardeners, but before any had
reached the palisade a white man emerged from the enclosure, rifle in hand, to
discover the cause of the commotion.
What he saw brought his
rifle to his shoulder, and Tarzan of the Apes would have felt cold lead once
again had not D'Arnot cried loudly to the man with the leveled gun:
“Do not fire! We are
friends!”
“Halt, then!” was the
reply.
“Stop, Tarzan!” cried
D'Arnot. “He thinks we are enemies.”
Tarzan dropped into a
walk, and together he and D'Arnot advanced toward the white man by the gate.
The latter eyed them in
puzzled bewilderment.
“What manner of men are
you?” he asked, in French.
“White men,” replied
D'Arnot. “We have been lost in the jungle for a long time.”
The man had lowered his
rifle and now advanced with outstretched hand.
“I am Father
Constantine of the French Mission here,” he said, “and I am glad to welcome
you.”
“This is Monsieur
Tarzan, Father Constantine,” replied D'Arnot, indicating the ape-man; and as
the priest extended his hand to Tarzan, D'Arnot added: “and I am Paul D'Arnot,
of the French Navy.”
Father Constantine took
the hand which Tarzan extended in imitation of the priest's act, while the
latter took in the superb physique and handsome face in one quick, keen glance.
And thus came Tarzan of
the Apes to the first outpost of civilization.
For a week they
remained there, and the ape-man, keenly observant, learned much of the ways of
men; meanwhile black women sewed white duck garments for himself and D'Arnot so
that they might continue their journey properly clothed.
Another month brought
them to a little group of buildings at the mouth of a wide river, and there
Tarzan saw many boats, and was filled with the timidity of the wild thing by
the sight of many men.
Gradually he became
accustomed to the strange noises and the odd ways of civilization, so that
presently none might know that two short months before, this handsome Frenchman
in immaculate white ducks, who laughed and chatted with the gayest of them, had
been swinging naked through primeval forests to pounce upon some unwary victim,
which, raw, was to fill his savage belly.
The knife and fork, so
contemptuously flung aside a month before, Tarzan now manipulated as
exquisitely as did the polished D'Arnot.
So apt a pupil had he
been that the young Frenchman had labored assiduously to make of Tarzan of the
Apes a polished gentleman in so far as nicety of manners and speech were
concerned.
“God made you a
gentleman at heart, my friend,” D'Arnot had said; “but we want His works to
show upon the exterior also.”
As soon as they had
reached the little port, D'Arnot had cabled his government of his safety, and
requested a three-months' leave, which had been granted.
He had also cabled his
bankers for funds, and the enforced wait of a month, under which both chafed,
was due to their inability to charter a vessel for the return to Tarzan's
jungle after the treasure.
During their stay at
the coast town “Monsieur Tarzan” became the wonder of both whites and blacks
because of several occurrences which to Tarzan seemed the merest of nothings.
Once a huge black,
crazed by drink, had run amuck and terrorized the town, until his evil star had
led him to where the black-haired French giant lolled upon the veranda of the
hotel.
Mounting the broad
steps, with brandished knife, the Negro made straight for a party of four men
sitting at a table sipping the inevitable absinthe.
Shouting in alarm, the
four took to their heels, and then the black spied Tarzan.
With a roar he charged
the ape-man, while half a hundred heads peered from sheltering windows and
doorways to witness the butchering of the poor Frenchman by the giant black.
Tarzan met the rush
with the fighting smile that the joy of battle always brought to his lips.
As the Negro closed
upon him, steel muscles gripped the black wrist of the uplifted knife-hand, and
a single swift wrench left the hand dangling below a broken bone.
With the pain and
surprise, the madness left the black man, and as Tarzan dropped back into his
chair the fellow turned, crying with agony, and dashed wildly toward the native
village.
On another occasion as
Tarzan and D'Arnot sat at dinner with a number of other whites, the talk fell
upon lions and lion hunting.
Opinion was divided as
to the bravery of the king of beasts --some maintaining that he was an arrant
coward, but all agreeing that it was with a feeling of greater security that
they gripped their express rifles when the monarch of the jungle roared about a
camp at night.
D'Arnot and Tarzan had
agreed that his past be kept secret, and so none other than the French officer
knew of the ape-man's familiarity with the beasts of the jungle.
“Monsieur Tarzan has
not expressed himself,” said one of the party. “A man of his prowess who has
spent some time in Africa, as I understand Monsieur Tarzan has, must have had
experiences with lions--yes?”
“Some,” replied Tarzan,
dryly. “Enough to know that each of you are right in your judgment of the
characteristics of the lions--you have met. But one might as well judge all
blacks by the fellow who ran amuck last week, or decide that all whites are
cowards because one has met a cowardly white.
“There is as much
individuality among the lower orders, gentlemen, as there is among ourselves.
Today we may go out and stumble upon a lion which is over-timid--he runs away
from us. To-morrow we may meet his uncle or his twin brother, and our friends
wonder why we do not return from the jungle. For myself, I always assume that a
lion is ferocious, and so I am never caught off my guard.”
“There would be little
pleasure in hunting,” retorted the first speaker, “if one is afraid of the
thing he hunts.”
D'Arnot smiled. Tarzan
afraid!
“I do not exactly
understand what you mean by fear,” said Tarzan. “Like lions, fear is a
different thing in different men, but to me the only pleasure in the hunt is the
knowledge that the hunted thing has power to harm me as much as I have to harm
him. If I went out with a couple of rifles and a gun bearer, and twenty or
thirty beaters, to hunt a lion, I should not feel that the lion had much
chance, and so the pleasure of the hunt would be lessened in proportion to the
increased safety which I felt.”
“Then I am to take it
that Monsieur Tarzan would prefer to go naked into the jungle, armed only with
a jackknife, to kill the king of beasts,” laughed the other, good naturedly,
but with the merest touch of sarcasm in his tone.
“And a piece of rope,”
added Tarzan.
Just then the deep roar
of a lion sounded from the distant jungle, as though to challenge whoever dared
enter the lists with him.
“There is your
opportunity, Monsieur Tarzan,” bantered the Frenchman.
“I am not hungry,” said
Tarzan simply.
The men laughed, all
but D'Arnot. He alone knew that a savage beast had spoken its simple reason
through the lips of the ape-man.
“But you are afraid,
just as any of us would be, to go out there naked, armed only with a knife and
a piece of rope,” said the banterer. “Is it not so?”
“No,” replied Tarzan. “Only
a fool performs any act without reason.”
“Five thousand francs
is a reason,” said the other. “I wager you that amount you cannot bring back a
lion from the jungle under the conditions we have named--naked and armed only
with a knife and a piece of rope.”
Tarzan glanced toward
D'Arnot and nodded his head.
“Make it ten thousand,”
said D'Arnot.
“Done,” replied the
other.
Tarzan arose.
“I shall have to leave
my clothes at the edge of the settlement, so that if I do not return before
daylight I shall have something to wear through the streets.”
“You are not going now,”
exclaimed the wagerer--“at night?”
“Why not?” asked
Tarzan. “Numa walks abroad at night --it will be easier to find him.”
“No,” said the other, “I
do not want your blood upon my hands. It will be foolhardy enough if you go
forth by day.”
“I shall go now,”
replied Tarzan, and went to his room for his knife and rope.
The men accompanied him
to the edge of the jungle, where he left his clothes in a small storehouse.
But when he would have
entered the blackness of the undergrowth they tried to dissuade him; and the
wagerer was most insistent of all that he abandon his foolhardy venture.
“I will accede that you
have won,” he said, “and the ten thousand francs are yours if you will but give
up this foolish attempt, which can only end in your death.”
Tarzan laughed, and in
another moment the jungle had swallowed him.
The men stood silent
for some moments and then slowly turned and walked back to the hotel veranda.
Tarzan had no sooner
entered the jungle than he took to the trees, and it was with a feeling of
exultant freedom that he swung once more through the forest branches.
This was life! Ah, how
he loved it! Civilization held nothing like this in its narrow and
circumscribed sphere, hemmed in by restrictions and conventionalities. Even
clothes were a hindrance and a nuisance.
At last he was free. He
had not realized what a prisoner he had been.
How easy it would be to
circle back to the coast, and then make toward the south and his own jungle and
cabin.
Now he caught the scent
of Numa, for he was traveling up wind. Presently his quick ears detected the
familiar sound of padded feet and the brushing of a huge, fur-clad body through
the undergrowth.
Tarzan came quietly
above the unsuspecting beast and silently stalked him until he came into a
little patch of moonlight.
Then the quick noose
settled and tightened about the tawny throat, and, as he had done it a hundred
times in the past, Tarzan made fast the end to a strong branch and, while the
beast fought and clawed for freedom, dropped to the ground behind him, and
leaping upon the great back, plunged his long thin blade a dozen times into the
fierce heart.
Then with his foot upon
the carcass of Numa, he raised his voice in the awesome victory cry of his
savage tribe.
For a moment Tarzan
stood irresolute, swayed by conflicting emotions of loyalty to D'Arnot and a
mighty lust for the freedom of his own jungle. At last the vision of a
beautiful face, and the memory of warm lips crushed to his dissolved the
fascinating picture he had been drawing of his old life.
The ape-man threw the
warm carcass of Numa across his shoulders and took to the trees once more.
The men upon the
veranda had sat for an hour, almost in silence.
They had tried
ineffectually to converse on various subjects, and always the thing uppermost
in the mind of each had caused the conversation to lapse.
“Mon Dieu,” said the
wagerer at length, “I can endure it no longer. I am going into the jungle with
my express and bring back that mad man.”
“I will go with you,”
said one.
“And I”--“And I”--“And
I,” chorused the others.
As though the
suggestion had broken the spell of some horrid nightmare they hastened to their
various quarters, and presently were headed toward the jungle--each one heavily
armed.
“God! What was that?”
suddenly cried one of the party, an Englishman, as Tarzan's savage cry came
faintly to their ears.
“I heard the same thing
once before,” said a Belgian, “when I was in the gorilla country. My carriers
said it was the cry of a great bull ape who has made a kill.”
D'Arnot remembered
Clayton's description of the awful roar with which Tarzan had announced his
kills, and he half smiled in spite of the horror which filled him to think that
the uncanny sound could have issued from a human throat --from the lips of his
friend.
As the party stood
finally near the edge of the jungle, debating as to the best distribution of
their forces, they were startled by a low laugh near them, and turning, beheld
advancing toward them a giant figure bearing a dead lion upon its broad
shoulders.
Even D'Arnot was
thunderstruck, for it seemed impossible that the man could have so quickly
dispatched a lion with the pitiful weapons he had taken, or that alone he could
have borne the huge carcass through the tangled jungle.
The men crowded about
Tarzan with many questions, but his only answer was a laughing depreciation of
his feat.
To Tarzan it was as
though one should eulogize a butcher for his heroism in killing a cow, for
Tarzan had killed so often for food and for self-preservation that the act
seemed anything but remarkable to him. But he was indeed a hero in the eyes of
these men--men accustomed to hunting big game.
Incidentally, he had
won ten thousand francs, for D'Arnot insisted that he keep it all.
This was a very
important item to Tarzan, who was just commencing to realize the power which
lay beyond the little pieces of metal and paper which always changed hands when
human beings rode, or ate, or slept, or clothed themselves, or drank, or
worked, or played, or sheltered themselves from the rain or cold or sun.
It had become evident
to Tarzan that without money one must die. D'Arnot had told him not to worry,
since he had more than enough for both, but the ape-man was learning many
things and one of them was that people looked down upon one who accepted money
from another without giving something of equal value in exchange.
Shortly after the
episode of the lion hunt, D'Arnot succeeded in chartering an ancient tub for
the coastwise trip to Tarzan's land-locked harbor.
It was a happy morning
for them both when the little vessel weighed anchor and made for the open sea.
The trip to the beach
was uneventful, and the morning after they dropped anchor before the cabin,
Tarzan, garbed once more in his jungle regalia and carrying a spade, set out
alone for the amphitheater of the apes where lay the treasure.
Late the next day he
returned, bearing the great chest upon his shoulder, and at sunrise the little
vessel worked through the harbor's mouth and took up her northward journey.
Three weeks later
Tarzan and D'Arnot were passengers on board a French steamer bound for Lyons,
and after a few days in that city D'Arnot took Tarzan to Paris.
The ape-man was anxious
to proceed to America, but D'Arnot insisted that he must accompany him to Paris
first, nor would he divulge the nature of the urgent necessity upon which he
based his demand.
One of the first things
which D'Arnot accomplished after their arrival was to arrange to visit a high
official of the police department, an old friend; and to take Tarzan with him.
Adroitly D'Arnot led
the conversation from point to point until the policeman had explained to the
interested Tarzan many of the methods in vogue for apprehending and identifying
criminals.
Not the least
interesting to Tarzan was the part played by finger prints in this fascinating
science.
“But of what value are
these imprints,” asked Tarzan, “when, after a few years the lines upon the
fingers are entirely changed by the wearing out of the old tissue and the
growth of new?”
“The lines never
change,” replied the official. “From infancy to senility the fingerprints of an
individual change only in size, except as injuries alter the loops and whorls.
But if imprints have been taken of the thumb and four fingers of both hands one
must needs lose all entirely to escape identification.”
“It is marvelous,”
exclaimed D'Arnot. “I wonder what the lines upon my own fingers may resemble.”
“We can soon see,”
replied the police officer, and ringing a bell he summoned an assistant to whom
he issued a few directions.
The man left the room,
but presently returned with a little hardwood box which he placed on his
superior's desk.
“Now,” said the
officer, “you shall have your fingerprints in a second.”
He drew from the little
case a square of plate glass, a little tube of thick ink, a rubber roller, and
a few snowy white cards.
Squeezing a drop of ink
onto the glass, he spread it back and forth with the rubber roller until the
entire surface of the glass was covered to his satisfaction with a very thin
and uniform layer of ink.
“Place the four fingers
of your right hand upon the glass, thus,” he said to D'Arnot. “Now the thumb.
That is right. Now place them in just the same position upon this card, here,
no--a little to the right. We must leave room for the thumb and the fingers of
the left hand. There, that's it. Now the same with the left.”
“Come, Tarzan,” cried
D'Arnot, “let's see what your whorls look like.”
Tarzan complied
readily, asking many questions of the officer during the operation.
“Do fingerprints show
racial characteristics?” he asked. “Could you determine, for example, solely
from fingerprints whether the subject was Negro or Caucasian?”
“I think not,” replied
the officer.
“Could the finger
prints of an ape be detected from those of a man?”
“Probably, because the
ape's would be far simpler than those of the higher organism.”
“But a cross between an
ape and a man might show the characteristics of either progenitor?” continued
Tarzan.
“Yes, I should think
likely,” responded the official; “but the science has not progressed sufficiently
to render it exact enough in such matters. I should hate to trust its findings
further than to differentiate between individuals. There it is absolute. No two
people born into the world probably have ever had identical lines upon all
their digits. It is very doubtful if any single fingerprint will ever be
exactly duplicated by any finger other than the one which originally made it.”
“Does the comparison
require much time or labor?” asked D'Arnot.
“Ordinarily but a few
moments, if the impressions are distinct.”
D'Arnot drew a little
black book from his pocket and commenced turning the pages.
Tarzan looked at the
book in surprise. How did D'Arnot come to have his book?
Presently D'Arnot
stopped at a page on which were five tiny little smudges.
He handed the open book
to the policeman.
“Are these imprints
similar to mine or Monsieur Tarzan's or can you say that they are identical
with either?” The officer drew a powerful glass from his desk and examined all
three specimens carefully, making notations meanwhile upon a pad of paper.
Tarzan realized now
what was the meaning of their visit to the police officer.
The answer to his
life's riddle lay in these tiny marks.
With tense nerves he
sat leaning forward in his chair, but suddenly he relaxed and dropped back,
smiling.
D'Arnot looked at him
in surprise.
“You forget that for
twenty years the dead body of the child who made those fingerprints lay in the
cabin of his father, and that all my life I have seen it lying there,” said
Tarzan bitterly.
The policeman looked up
in astonishment.
“Go ahead, captain,
with your examination,” said D'Arnot, “we will tell you the story
later--provided Monsieur Tarzan is agreeable.”
Tarzan nodded his head.
“But you are mad, my
dear D'Arnot,” he insisted. “Those little fingers are buried on the west coast
of Africa.”
“I do not know as to
that, Tarzan,” replied D'Arnot. “It is possible, but if you are not the son of
John Clayton then how in heaven's name did you come into that God forsaken
jungle where no white man other than John Clayton had ever set foot?”
“You forget--Kala,”
said Tarzan.
“I do not even consider
her,” replied D'Arnot.
The friends had walked
to the broad window overlooking the boulevard as they talked. For some time
they stood there gazing out upon the busy throng beneath, each wrapped in his
own thoughts.
“It takes some time to
compare finger prints,” thought D'Arnot, turning to look at the police officer.
To his astonishment he
saw the official leaning back in his chair hastily scanning the contents of the
little black diary.
D'Arnot coughed. The
policeman looked up, and, catching his eye, raised his finger to admonish
silence. D'Arnot turned back to the window, and presently the police officer
spoke.
“Gentlemen,” he said.
Both turned toward him.
“There is evidently a
great deal at stake which must hinge to a greater or lesser extent upon the
absolute correctness of this comparison. I therefore ask that you leave the
entire matter in my hands until Monsieur Desquerc, our expert returns. It will
be but a matter of a few days.”
“I had hoped to know at
once,” said D'Arnot. “Monsieur Tarzan sails for America tomorrow.”
“I will promise that you
can cable him a report within two weeks,” replied the officer; “but what it
will be I dare not say. There are resemblances, yet--well, we had better leave
it for Monsieur Desquerc to solve.”
A taxicab drew up
before an oldfashioned residence upon the outskirts of Baltimore.
A man of about forty,
well built and with strong, regular features, stepped out, and paying the
chauffeur dismissed him.
A moment later the
passenger was entering the library of the old home.
“Ah, Mr. Canler!”
exclaimed an old man, rising to greet him.
“Good evening, my dear
Professor,” cried the man, extending a cordial hand.
“Who admitted you?”
asked the professor.
“Esmeralda.”
“Then she will acquaint
Jane with the fact that you are here,” said the old man.
“No, Professor,”
replied Canler, “for I came primarily to see you.”
“Ah, I am honored,”
said Professor Porter.
“Professor,” continued
Robert Canler, with great deliberation, as though carefully weighing his words,
“I have come this evening to speak with you about Jane.”
“You know my
aspirations, and you have been generous enough to approve my suit.”
Professor Archimedes Q.
Porter fidgeted in his armchair. The subject always made him uncomfortable. He
could not understand why. Canler was a splendid match.
“But Jane,” continued
Canler, “I cannot understand her. She puts me off first on one ground and then
another. I have always the feeling that she breathes a sigh of relief every
time I bid her good-by.”
“Tut, tut,” said
Professor Porter. “Tut, tut, Mr. Canler. Jane is a most obedient daughter. She
will do precisely as I tell her.”
“Then I can still count
on your support?” asked Canler, a tone of relief marking his voice.
“Certainly, sir; certainly,
sir,” exclaimed Professor Porter. “How could you doubt it?”
“There is young
Clayton, you know,” suggested Canler. “He has been hanging about for months. I
don't know that Jane cares for him; but beside his title they say he has
inherited a very considerable estate from his father, and it might not be
strange,--if he finally won her, unless--” and Canler paused.
“Tut--tut, Mr. Canler;
unless--what?”
“Unless, you see fit to
request that Jane and I be married at once,” said Canler, slowly and distinctly.
“I have already
suggested to Jane that it would be desirable,” said Professor Porter sadly, “for
we can no longer afford to keep up this house, and live as her associations
demand.”
“What was her reply?”
asked Canler.
“She said she was not
ready to marry anyone yet,” replied Professor Porter, “and that we could go and
live upon the farm in northern Wisconsin which her mother left her.
“It is a little more
than self-supporting. The tenants have always made a living from it, and been
able to send Jane a trifle beside, each year. She is planning on our going up
there the first of the week. Philander and Mr. Clayton have already gone to get
things in readiness for us.”
“Clayton has gone
there?” exclaimed Canler, visibly chagrined. “Why was I not told? I would
gladly have gone and seen that every comfort was provided.”
“Jane feels that we are
already too much in your debt, Mr. Canler,” said Professor Porter.
Canler was about to
reply, when the sound of footsteps came from the hall without, and Jane entered
the room.
“Oh, I beg your pardon!”
she exclaimed, pausing on the threshold. “I thought you were alone, papa.”
“It is only I, Jane,”
said Canler, who had risen, “won't you come in and join the family group? We
were just speaking of you.”
“Thank you,” said Jane,
entering and taking the chair Canler placed for her. “I only wanted to tell
papa that Tobey is coming down from the college tomorrow to pack his books. I
want you to be sure, papa, to indicate all that you can do without until fall.
Please don't carry this entire library to Wisconsin, as you would have carried
it to Africa, if I had not put my foot down.”
“Was Tobey here?” asked
Professor Porter.
“Yes, I just left him.
He and Esmeralda are exchanging religious experiences on the back porch now.”
“Tut, tut, I must see
him at once!” cried the professor. “Excuse me just a moment, children,” and the
old man hastened from the room.
As soon as he was out
of earshot Canler turned to Jane.
“See here, Jane,” he
said bluntly. “How long is this thing going on like this? You haven't refused
to marry me, but you haven't promised either. I want to get the license
tomorrow, so that we can be married quietly before you leave for Wisconsin. I
don't care for any fuss or feathers, and I'm sure you don't either.”
The girl turned cold,
but she held her head bravely.
“Your father wishes it,
you know,” added Canler.
“Yes, I know.”
She spoke scarcely
above a whisper.
“Do you realize that
you are buying me, Mr. Canler?” she said finally, and in a cold, level voice. “Buying
me for a few paltry dollars? Of course you do, Robert Canler, and the hope of
just such a contingency was in your mind when you loaned papa the money for
that hair-brained escapade, which but for a most mysterious circumstance would
have been surprisingly successful.
“But you, Mr. Canler,
would have been the most surprised. You had no idea that the venture would
succeed. You are too good a businessman for that. And you are too good a
businessman to loan money for buried treasure seeking, or to loan money without
security--unless you had some special object in view.
“You knew that without
security you had a greater hold on the honor of the Porters than with it. You
knew the one best way to force me to marry you, without seeming to force me.
“You have never
mentioned the loan. In any other man I should have thought that the prompting
of a magnanimous and noble character. But you are deep, Mr. Robert Canler. I
know you better than you think I know you.
“I shall certainly
marry you if there is no other way, but let us understand each other once and
for all.”
While she spoke Robert
Canler had alternately flushed and paled, and when she ceased speaking he
arose, and with a cynical smile upon his strong face, said:
“You surprise me, Jane.
I thought you had more self-control --more pride. Of course you are right. I am
buying you, and I knew that you knew it, but I thought you would prefer to
pretend that it was otherwise. I should have thought your self respect and your
Porter pride would have shrunk from admitting, even to yourself, that you were
a bought woman. But have it your own way, dear girl,” he added lightly. “I am
going to have you, and that is all that interests me.”
Without a word the girl
turned and left the room.
Jane was not married
before she left with her father and Esmeralda for her little Wisconsin farm,
and as she coldly bid Robert Canler goodby as her train pulled out, he called
to her that he would join them in a week or two.
At their destination they
were met by Clayton and Mr. Philander in a huge touring car belonging to the
former, and quickly whirled away through the dense northern woods toward the
little farm which the girl had not visited before since childhood.
The farmhouse, which
stood on a little elevation some hundred yards from the tenant house, had
undergone a complete transformation during the three weeks that Clayton and Mr.
Philander had been there.
The former had imported
a small army of carpenters and plasterers, plumbers and painters from a distant
city, and what had been but a dilapidated shell when they reached it was now a
cosy little two-story house filled with every modern convenience procurable in
so short a time.
“Why, Mr. Clayton, what
have you done?” cried Jane Porter, her heart sinking within her as she realized
the probable size of the expenditure that had been made.
“S-sh,” cautioned
Clayton. “Don't let your father guess. If you don't tell him he will never
notice, and I simply couldn't think of him living in the terrible squalor and
sordidness which Mr. Philander and I found. It was so little when I would like
to do so much, Jane. For his sake, please, never mention it.”
“But you know that we
can't repay you,” cried the girl. “Why do you want to put me under such
terrible obligations?”
“Don't, Jane,” said
Clayton sadly. “If it had been just you, believe me, I wouldn't have done it,
for I knew from the start that it would only hurt me in your eyes, but I
couldn't think of that dear old man living in the hole we found here. Won't you
please believe that I did it just for him and give me that little crumb of
pleasure at least?”
“I do believe you, Mr.
Clayton,” said the girl, “because I know you are big enough and generous enough
to have done it just for him--and, oh Cecil, I wish I might repay you as you
deserve--as you would wish.”
“Why can't you, Jane?”
“Because I love
another.”
“Canler?”
“No.”
“But you are going to
marry him. He told me as much before I left Baltimore.”
The girl winced.
“I do not love him,”
she said, almost proudly.
“Is it because of the
money, Jane?”
She nodded.
“Then am I so much less
desirable than Canler? I have money enough, and far more, for every need,” he
said bitterly.
“I do not love you,
Cecil,” she said, “but I respect you. If I must disgrace myself by such a
bargain with any man, I prefer that it be one I already despise. I should
loathe the man to whom I sold myself without love, whomsoever he might be. You
will be happier,” she concluded, “alone--with my respect and friendship, than
with me and my contempt.”
He did not press the
matter further, but if ever a man had murder in his heart it was William Cecil
Clayton, Lord Greystoke, when, a week later, Robert Canler drew up before the
farmhouse in his purring six cylinder.
A week passed; a tense,
uneventful, but uncomfortable week for all the inmates of the little Wisconsin
farmhouse.
Canler was insistent
that Jane marry him at once.
At length she gave in
from sheer loathing of the continued and hateful importuning.
It was agreed that on
the morrow Canler was to drive to town and bring back the license and a
minister.
Clayton had wanted to
leave as soon as the plan was announced, but the girl's tired, hopeless look
kept him. He could not desert her.
Something might happen
yet, he tried to console himself by thinking. And in his heart, he knew that it
would require but a tiny spark to turn his hatred for Canler into the blood
lust of the killer.
Early the next morning
Canler set out for town.
In the east smoke could
be seen lying low over the forest, for a fire had been raging for a week not
far from them, but the wind still lay in the west and no danger threatened
them.
About noon Jane started
off for a walk. She would not let Clayton accompany her. She wanted to be
alone, she said, and he respected her wishes.
In the house Professor
Porter and Mr. Philander were immersed in an absorbing discussion of some
weighty scientific problem. Esmeralda dozed in the kitchen, and Clayton,
heavy-eyed after a sleepless night, threw himself down upon the couch in the
living room and soon dropped into a fitful slumber.
To the east the black
smoke clouds rose higher into the heavens, suddenly they eddied, and then
commenced to drift rapidly toward the west.
On and on they came.
The inmates of the tenant house were gone, for it was market day, and none was
there to see the rapid approach of the fiery demon.
Soon the flames had
spanned the road to the south and cut off Canler's return. A little fluctuation
of the wind now carried the path of the forest fire to the north, then blew
back and the flames nearly stood still as though held in leash by some master
hand.
Suddenly, out of the
northeast, a great black car came careening down the road.
With a jolt it stopped
before the cottage, and a black-haired giant leaped out to run up onto the
porch. Without a pause he rushed into the house. On the couch lay Clayton. The
man started in surprise, but with a bound was at the side of the sleeping man.
Shaking him roughly by
the shoulder, he cried:
“My God, Clayton, are
you all mad here? Don't you know you are nearly surrounded by fire? Where is
Miss Porter?”
Clayton sprang to his
feet. He did not recognize the man, but he understood the words and was upon
the veranda in a bound.
“Scott!” he cried, and
then, dashing back into the house, “Jane! Jane! where are you?”
In an instant
Esmeralda, Professor Porter and Mr. Philander had joined the two men.
“Where is Miss Jane?”
cried Clayton, seizing Esmeralda by the shoulders and shaking her roughly.
“Oh, Gaberelle, Mister
Clayton, she done gone for a walk.”
“Hasn't she come back
yet?” and, without waiting for a reply, Clayton dashed out into the yard,
followed by the others. “Which way did she go?” cried the black-haired giant of
Esmeralda.
“Down that road,” cried
the frightened woman, pointing toward the south where a mighty wall of roaring
flames shut out the view.
“Put these people in
the other car,” shouted the stranger to Clayton. “I saw one as I drove up--and
get them out of here by the north road.
“Leave my car here. If
I find Miss Porter we shall need it. If I don't, no one will need it. Do as I
say,” as Clayton hesitated, and then they saw the lithe figure bound away cross
the clearing toward the northwest where the forest still stood, untouched by
flame.
In each rose the
unaccountable feeling that a great responsibility had been raised from their
shoulders; a kind of implicit confidence in the power of the stranger to save
Jane if she could be saved.
“Who was that?” asked
Professor Porter.
“I do not know,”
replied Clayton. “He called me by name and he knew Jane, for he asked for her.
And he called Esmeralda by name.”
“There was something
most startlingly familiar about him,” exclaimed Mr. Philander, “And yet, bless
me, I know I never saw him before.”
“Tut, tut!” cried
Professor Porter. “Most remarkable! Who could it have been, and why do I feel
that Jane is safe, now that he has set out in search of her?”
“I can't tell you,
Professor,” said Clayton soberly, “but I know I have the same uncanny feeling.”
“But come,” he cried, “we
must get out of here ourselves, or we shall be shut off,” and the party
hastened toward Clayton's car.
When Jane turned to
retrace her steps homeward, she was alarmed to note how near the smoke of the
forest fire seemed, and as she hastened onward her alarm became almost a panic
when she perceived that the rushing flames were rapidly forcing their way
between herself and the cottage.
At length she was
compelled to turn into the dense thicket and attempt to force her way to the
west in an effort to circle around the flames and reach the house.
In a short time the
futility of her attempt became apparent and then her one hope lay in retracing
her steps to the road and flying for her life to the south toward the town.
The twenty minutes that
it took her to regain the road was all that had been needed to cut off her
retreat as effectually as her advance had been cut off before.
A short run down the
road brought her to a horrified stand, for there before her was another wall of
flame. An arm of the main conflagration had shot out a half mile south of its
parent to embrace this tiny strip of road in its implacable clutches.
Jane knew that it was
useless again to attempt to force her way through the undergrowth.
She had tried it once,
and failed. Now she realized that it would be but a matter of minutes ere the
whole space between the north and the south would be a seething mass of
billowing flames.
Calmly the girl kneeled
down in the dust of the roadway and prayed for strength to meet her fate
bravely, and for the delivery of her father and her friends from death.
Suddenly she heard her
name being called aloud through the forest:
“Jane! Jane Porter!” It
rang strong and clear, but in a strange voice.
“Here!” she called in
reply. “Here! In the roadway!”
Then through the
branches of the trees she saw a figure swinging with the speed of a squirrel.
A veering of the wind
blew a cloud of smoke about them and she could no longer see the man who was
speeding toward her, but suddenly she felt a great arm about her. Then she was
lifted up, and she felt the rushing of the wind and the occasional brush of a
branch as she was borne along.
She opened her eyes.
Far below her lay the
undergrowth and the hard earth.
About her was the
waving foliage of the forest.
From tree to tree swung
the giant figure which bore her, and it seemed to Jane that she was living over
in a dream the experience that had been hers in that far African jungle.
Oh, if it were but the
same man who had borne her so swiftly through the tangled verdure on that other
day! but that was impossible! Yet who else in all the world was there with the
strength and agility to do what this man was now doing?
She stole a sudden
glance at the face close to hers, and then she gave a little frightened gasp.
It was he!
“My forest man!” she
murmured, “No, I must be delerious!”
“Yes, your man, Jane
Porter. Your savage, primeval man come out of the jungle to claim his mate--the
woman who ran away from him,” he added almost fiercely.
“I did not run away,”
she whispered. “I would only consent to leave when they had waited a week for
you to return.”
They had come to a
point beyond the fire now, and he had turned back to the clearing.
Side by side they were
walking toward the cottage. The wind had changed once more and the fire was
burning back upon itself--another hour like that and it would be burned out.
“Why did you not
return?” she asked.
“I was nursing D'Arnot.
He was badly wounded.”
“Ah, I knew it!” she
exclaimed.
“They said you had gone
to join the blacks--that they were your people.”
He laughed.
“But you did not
believe them, Jane?”
“No;--what shall I call
you?” she asked. “What is your name?”
“I was Tarzan of the
Apes when you first knew me,” he said.
“Tarzan of the Apes!”
she cried--“and that was your note I answered when I left?”
“Yes, whose did you
think it was?”
“I did not know; only
that it could not be yours, for Tarzan of the Apes had written in English, and
you could not understand a word of any language.”
Again he laughed.
“It is a long story,
but it was I who wrote what I could not speak--and now D'Arnot has made matters
worse by teaching me to speak French instead of English.
“Come,” he added, “jump
into my car, we must overtake your father, they are only a little way ahead.”
As they drove along, he
said:
“Then when you said in
your note to Tarzan of the Apes that you loved another--you might have meant
me?”
“I might have,” she
answered, simply.
“But in Baltimore--Oh,
how I have searched for you--they told me you would possibly be married by now.
That a man named Canler had come up here to wed you. Is that true?”
“Yes.”
“Do you love him?”
“No.”
“Do you love me?”
She buried her face in
her hands.
“I am promised to
another. I cannot answer you, Tarzan of the Apes,” she cried.
“You have answered.
Now, tell me why you would marry one you do not love.”
“My father owes him
money.”
Suddenly there came
back to Tarzan the memory of the letter he had read--and the name Robert Canler
and the hinted trouble which he had been unable to understand then.
He smiled.
“If your father had not
lost the treasure you would not feel forced to keep your promise to this man
Canler?”
“I could ask him to
release me.”
“And if he refused?”
“I have given my
promise.”
He was silent for a
moment. The car was plunging along the uneven road at a reckless pace, for the
fire showed threateningly at their right, and another change of the wind might
sweep it on with raging fury across this one avenue of escape.
Finally they passed the
danger point, and Tarzan reduced their speed.
“Suppose I should ask
him?” ventured Tarzan.
“He would scarcely
accede to the demand of a stranger,” said the girl. “Especially one who wanted
me himself.”
“Terkoz did,” said
Tarzan, grimly.
Jane shuddered and
looked fearfully up at the giant figure beside her, for she knew that he meant
the great anthropoid he had killed in her defense.
“This is not the
African jungle,” she said. “You are no longer a savage beast. You are a
gentleman, and gentlemen do not kill in cold blood.”
“I am still a wild
beast at heart,” he said, in a low voice, as though to himself.
Again they were silent
for a time.
“Jane,” said the man,
at length, “if you were free, would you marry me?”
She did not reply at
once, but he waited patiently.
The girl was trying to
collect her thoughts.
What did she know of
this strange creature at her side? What did he know of himself? Who was he?
Who, his parents?
Why, his very name
echoed his mysterious origin and his savage life.
He had no name. Could
she be happy with this jungle waif? Could she find anything in common with a
husband whose life had been spent in the tree tops of an African wilderness,
frolicking and fighting with fierce anthropoids; tearing his food from the
quivering flank of fresh-killed prey, sinking his strong teeth into raw flesh,
and tearing away his portion while his mates growled and fought about him for
their share?
Could he ever rise to
her social sphere? Could she bear to think of sinking to his? Would either be
happy in such a horrible misalliance?
“You do not answer,” he
said. “Do you shrink from wounding me?”
“I do not know what
answer to make,” said Jane sadly. “I do not know my own mind.”
“You do not love me,
then?” he asked, in a level tone.
“Do not ask me. You
will be happier without me. You were never meant for the formal restrictions
and conventionalities of society--civilization would become irksome to you, and
in a little while you would long for the freedom of your old life--a life to
which I am as totally unfitted as you to mine.”
“I think I understand
you,” he replied quietly. “I shall not urge you, for I would rather see you
happy than to be happy myself. I see now that you could not be happy with--an
ape.”
There was just the
faintest tinge of bitterness in his voice.
“Don't,” she
remonstrated. “Don't say that. You do not understand.”
But before she could go
on a sudden turn in the road brought them into the midst of a little hamlet.
Before them stood
Clayton's car surrounded by the party he had brought from the cottage.
At the sight of Jane,
cries of relief and delight broke from every lip, and as Tarzan's car stopped
beside the other, Professor Porter caught his daughter in his arms.
For a moment no one
noticed Tarzan, sitting silently in his seat.
Clayton was the first
to remember, and, turning, held out his hand.
“How can we ever thank
you?” he exclaimed. “You have saved us all. You called me by name at the
cottage, but I do not seem to recall yours, though there is something very
familiar about you. It is as though I had known you well under very different
conditions a long time ago.”
Tarzan smiled as he
took the proffered hand.
“You are quite right,
Monsieur Clayton,” he said, in French. “You will pardon me if I do not speak to
you in English. I am just learning it, and while I understand it fairly well I
speak it very poorly.”
“But who are you?”
insisted Clayton, speaking in French this time himself.
“Tarzan of the Apes.”
Clayton started back in
surprise.
“By Jove!” he
exclaimed. “It is true.”
And Professor Porter
and Mr. Philander pressed forward to add their thanks to Clayton's, and to
voice their surprise and pleasure at seeing their jungle friend so far from his
savage home.
The party now entered
the modest little hostelry, where Clayton soon made arrangements for their
entertainment.
They were sitting in
the little, stuffy parlor when the distant chugging of an approaching
automobile caught their attention.
Mr. Philander, who was
sitting near the window, looked out as the car drew in sight, finally stopping
beside the other automobiles.
“Bless me!” said Mr.
Philander, a shade of annoyance in his tone. “It is Mr. Canler. I had hoped,
er--I had thought or--er--how very happy we should be that he was not caught in
the fire,” he ended lamely.
“Tut, tut! Mr.
Philander,” said Professor Porter. “Tut, tut! I have often admonished my pupils
to count ten before speaking. Were I you, Mr. Philander, I should count at
least a thousand, and then maintain a discreet silence.”
“Bless me, yes!”
acquiesced Mr. Philander. “But who is the clerical appearing gentleman with
him?”
Jane blanched.
Clayton moved uneasily
in his chair.
Professor Porter
removed his spectacles nervously, and breathed upon them, but replaced them on
his nose without wiping.
The ubiquitous
Esmeralda grunted.
Only Tarzan did not
comprehend.
Presently Robert Canler
burst into the room.
“Thank God!” he cried. “I
feared the worst, until I saw your car, Clayton. I was cut off on the south
road and had to go away back to town, and then strike east to this road. I
thought we'd never reach the cottage.”
No one seemed to
enthuse much. Tarzan eyed Robert Canler as Sabor eyes her prey.
Jane glanced at him and
coughed nervously.
“Mr. Canler,” she said,
“this is Monsieur Tarzan, an old friend.”
Canler turned and
extended his hand. Tarzan rose and bowed as only D'Arnot could have taught a
gentleman to do it, but he did not seem to see Canler's hand.
Nor did Canler appear
to notice the oversight.
“This is the Reverend
Mr. Tousley, Jane,” said Canler, turning to the clerical party behind him. “Mr.
Tousley, Miss Porter.”
Mr. Tousley bowed and
beamed.
Canler introduced him
to the others.
“We can have the
ceremony at once, Jane,” said Canler. “Then you and I can catch the midnight
train in town.”
Tarzan understood the
plan instantly. He glanced out of half-closed eyes at Jane, but he did not
move.
The girl hesitated. The
room was tense with the silence of taut nerves.
All eyes turned toward
Jane, awaiting her reply.
“Can't we wait a few
days?” she asked. “I am all unstrung. I have been through so much today.”
Canler felt the
hostility that emanated from each member of the party. It made him angry.
“We have waited as long
as I intend to wait,” he said roughly. “You have promised to marry me. I shall
be played with no longer. I have the license and here is the preacher. Come Mr.
Tousley; come Jane. There are plenty of witnesses --more than enough,” he added
with a disagreeable inflection; and taking Jane Porter by the arm, he started
to lead her toward the waiting minister.
But scarcely had he
taken a single step ere a heavy hand closed upon his arm with a grip of steel.
Another hand shot to
his throat and in a moment he was being shaken high above the floor, as a cat
might shake a mouse.
Jane turned in
horrified surprise toward Tarzan.
And, as she looked into
his face, she saw the crimson band upon his forehead that she had seen that
other day in far distant Africa, when Tarzan of the Apes had closed in mortal
combat with the great anthropoid--Terkoz.
She knew that murder
lay in that savage heart, and with a little cry of horror she sprang forward to
plead with the ape-man. But her fears were more for Tarzan than for Canler. She
realized the stern retribution which justice metes to the murderer.
Before she could reach
them, however, Clayton had jumped to Tarzan's side and attempted to drag Canler
from his grasp.
With a single sweep of
one mighty arm the Englishman was hurled across the room, and then Jane laid a
firm white hand upon Tarzan's wrist, and looked up into his eyes.
“For my sake,” she
said.
The grasp upon Canler's
throat relaxed.
Tarzan looked down into
the beautiful face before him.
“Do you wish this to
live?” he asked in surprise.
“I do not wish him to
die at your hands, my friend,” she replied. “I do not wish you to become a
murderer.”
Tarzan removed his hand
from Canler's throat.
“Do you release her
from her promise?” he asked. “It is the price of your life.”
Canler, gasping for
breath, nodded.
“Will you go away and
never molest her further?”
Again the man nodded
his head, his face distorted by fear of the death that had been so close.
Tarzan released him,
and Canler staggered toward the door. In another moment he was gone, and the
terror-stricken preacher with him.
Tarzan turned toward
Jane.
“May I speak with you
for a moment, alone,” he asked.
The girl nodded and
started toward the door leading to the narrow veranda of the little hotel. She
passed out to await Tarzan and so did not hear the conversation which followed.
“Wait,” cried Professor
Porter, as Tarzan was about to follow.
The professor had been
stricken dumb with surprise by the rapid developments of the past few minutes.
“Before we go further,
sir, I should like an explanation of the events which have just transpired. By
what right, sir, did you interfere between my daughter and Mr. Canler? I had
promised him her hand, sir, and regardless of our personal likes or dislikes,
sir, that promise must be kept.”
“I interfered,
Professor Porter,” replied Tarzan, “because your daughter does not love Mr.
Canler--she does not wish to marry him. That is enough for me to know.”
“You do not know what
you have done,” said Professor Porter. “Now he will doubtless refuse to marry
her.”
“He most certainly
will,” said Tarzan, emphatically.
“And further,” added
Tarzan, “you need not fear that your pride will suffer, Professor Porter, for
you will be able to pay the Canler person what you owe him the moment you reach
home.”
“Tut, tut, sir!”
exclaimed Professor Porter. “What do you mean, sir?”
“Your treasure has been
found,” said Tarzan.
“What--what is that you
are saying?” cried the professor. “You are mad, man. It cannot be.”
“It is, though. It was
I who stole it, not knowing either its value or to whom it belonged. I saw the
sailors bury it, and, ape-like, I had to dig it up and bury it again elsewhere.
When D'Arnot told me what it was and what it meant to you I returned to the
jungle and recovered it. It had caused so much crime and suffering and sorrow
that D'Arnot thought it best not to attempt to bring the treasure itself on
here, as had been my intention, so I have brought a letter of credit instead.
“Here it is, Professor
Porter,” and Tarzan drew an envelope from his pocket and handed it to the
astonished professor, “two hundred and forty-one thousand dollars. The treasure
was most carefully appraised by experts, but lest there should be any question
in your mind, D'Arnot himself bought it and is holding it for you, should you
prefer the treasure to the credit.”
“To the already great
burden of the obligations we owe you, sir,” said Professor Porter, with
trembling voice, “is now added this greatest of all services. You have given me
the means to save my honor.”
Clayton, who had left
the room a moment after Canler, now returned.
“Pardon me,” he said. “I
think we had better try to reach town before dark and take the first train out
of this forest. A native just rode by from the north, who reports that the fire
is moving slowly in this direction.”
This announcement broke
up further conversation, and the entire party went out to the waiting
automobiles.
Clayton, with Jane, the
professor and Esmeralda occupied Clayton's car, while Tarzan took Mr. Philander
in with him.
“Bless me!” exclaimed
Mr. Philander, as the car moved off after Clayton. “Who would ever have thought
it possible! The last time I saw you you were a veritable wild man, skipping
about among the branches of a tropical African forest, and now you are driving
me along a Wisconsin road in a French automobile. Bless me! But it is most
remarkable.”
“Yes,” assented Tarzan,
and then, after a pause, “Mr. Philander, do you recall any of the details of
the finding and burying of three skeletons found in my cabin beside that
African jungle?”
“Very distinctly, sir,
very distinctly,” replied Mr. Philander.
“Was there anything
peculiar about any of those skeletons?”
Mr. Philander eyed
Tarzan narrowly.
“Why do you ask?”
“It means a great deal
to me to know,” replied Tarzan. “Your answer may clear up a mystery. It can do
no worse, at any rate, than to leave it still a mystery. I have been
entertaining a theory concerning those skeletons for the past two months, and I
want you to answer my question to the best of your knowledge--were the three
skeletons you buried all human skeletons?”
“No,” said Mr.
Philander, “the smallest one, the one found in the crib, was the skeleton of an
anthropoid ape.”
“Thank you,” said
Tarzan.
In the car ahead, Jane
was thinking fast and furiously. She had felt the purpose for which Tarzan had
asked a few words with her, and she knew that she must be prepared to give him
an answer in the very near future.
He was not the sort of
person one could put off, and somehow that very thought made her wonder if she
did not really fear him.
And could she love
where she feared?
She realized the spell
that had been upon her in the depths of that far-off jungle, but there was no
spell of enchantment now in prosaic Wisconsin.
Nor did the immaculate
young Frenchman appeal to the primal woman in her, as had the stalwart forest
god.
Did she love him? She
did not know--now.
She glanced at Clayton
out of the corner of her eye. Was not here a man trained in the same school of
environment in which she had been trained--a man with social position and
culture such as she had been taught to consider as the prime essentials to
congenial association?
Did not her best
judgment point to this young English nobleman, whose love she knew to be of the
sort a civilized woman should crave, as the logical mate for such as herself?
Could she love Clayton?
She could see no reason why she could not. Jane was not coldly calculating by
nature, but training, environment and heredity had all combined to teach her to
reason even in matters of the heart.
That she had been
carried off her feet by the strength of the young giant when his great arms
were about her in the distant African forest, and again today, in the Wisconsin
woods, seemed to her only attributable to a temporary mental reversion to type
on her part--to the psychological appeal of the primeval man to the primeval
woman in her nature.
If he should never
touch her again, she reasoned, she would never feel attracted toward him. She
had not loved him, then. It had been nothing more than a passing hallucination,
super-induced by excitement and by personal contact.
Excitement would not
always mark their future relations, should she marry him, and the power of
personal contact eventually would be dulled by familiarity.
Again she glanced at
Clayton. He was very handsome and every inch a gentleman. She should be very
proud of such a husband.
And then he spoke--a
minute sooner or a minute later might have made all the difference in the world
to three lives --but chance stepped in and pointed out to Clayton the
psychological moment.
“You are free now,
Jane,” he said. “Won't you say yes--I will devote my life to making you very
happy.”
“Yes,” she whispered.
That evening in the
little waiting room at the station Tarzan caught Jane alone for a moment.
“You are free now,
Jane,” he said, “and I have come across the ages out of the dim and distant
past from the lair of the primeval man to claim you--for your sake I have
become a civilized man--for your sake I have crossed oceans and continents--for
your sake I will be whatever you will me to be. I can make you happy, Jane, in
the life you know and love best. Will you marry me?”
For the first time she
realized the depths of the man's love --all that he had accomplished in so
short a time solely for love of her. Turning her head she buried her face in
her arms.
What had she done?
Because she had been afraid she might succumb to the pleas of this giant, she
had burned her bridges behind her--in her groundless apprehension that she
might make a terrible mistake, she had made a worse one.
And then she told him
all--told him the truth word by word, without attempting to shield herself or
condone her error.
“What can we do?” he
asked. “You have admitted that you love me. You know that I love you; but I do
not know the ethics of society by which you are governed. I shall leave the
decision to you, for you know best what will be for your eventual welfare.”
“I cannot tell him,
Tarzan,” she said. “He too, loves me, and he is a good man. I could never face
you nor any other honest person if I repudiated my promise to Mr. Clayton. I
shall have to keep it--and you must help me bear the burden, though we may not
see each other again after tonight.”
The others were
entering the room now and Tarzan turned toward the little window.
But he saw nothing
outside--within he saw a patch of greensward surrounded by a matted mass of
gorgeous tropical plants and flowers, and, above, the waving foliage of mighty
trees, and, over all, the blue of an equatorial sky.
In the center of the
greensward a young woman sat upon a little mound of earth, and beside her sat a
young giant. They ate pleasant fruit and looked into each other's eyes and
smiled. They were very happy, and they were all alone.
His thoughts were
broken in upon by the station agent who entered asking if there was a gentleman
by the name of Tarzan in the party.
“I am Monsieur Tarzan,”
said the ape-man.
“Here is a message for
you, forwarded from Baltimore; it is a cablegram from Paris.”
Tarzan took the
envelope and tore it open. The message was from D'Arnot.
It read:
Fingerprints prove you
Greystoke. Congratulations.
D'Arnot.
As Tarzan finished
reading, Clayton entered and came toward him with extended hand.
Here was the man who
had Tarzan's title, and Tarzan's estates, and was going to marry the woman whom
Tarzan loved--the woman who loved Tarzan. A single word from Tarzan would make
a great difference in this man's life.
It would take away his
title and his lands and his castles, and--it would take them away from Jane
Porter also. “I say, old man,” cried Clayton, “I haven't had a chance to thank
you for all you've done for us. It seems as though you had your hands full
saving our lives in Africa and here.
“I'm awfully glad you
came on here. We must get better acquainted. I often thought about you, you
know, and the remarkable circumstances of your environment.
“If it's any of my
business, how the devil did you ever get into that bally jungle?”
“I was born there,”
said Tarzan, quietly. “My mother was an Ape, and of course she couldn't tell me
much about it. I never knew who my father was.”